Selected quad for the lemma: christian_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
christian_n believe_v jesus_n messiah_n 1,398 5 10.9446 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A28890 The light of the world a most true relation of a pilgrimess, M. Antonia Bourignon travelling towards eternity ... : divided into three parts ... / written originally in French, and faithfully translated into English ; to which is added, a preface to the English reader.; Lumiere du monde. English Bourignon, Antoinette, 1616-1680.; Cort, Chrétien de, d. 1669. 1696 (1696) Wing B3842; ESTC R36499 498,584 635

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

wisdom_n the_o original_n of_o all_o goodness_n and_o incomprehensible_a power_n in_o short_a the_o church_n be_v god_n himself_o 17._o who_o can_v fail_v or_o err_v therefore_o jesus_n christ_n say_v 16_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o because_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v god_n 1._o as_o our_o word_n be_v we_o our_o heart_n must_v be_v where_o we_o speak_v and_o also_o our_o understanding_n even_o so_o where_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v which_o be_v his_o church_n there_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v which_o be_v his_o understanding_n and_o the_o almighty_a power_n which_o be_v his_o heart_n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o holy_a trinity_n compose_v the_o church_n which_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o the_o good_a will_n of_o the_o son_n all_o these_o thing_n be_v find_v unite_v in_o the_o church_n for_o god_n have_v a_o design_n to_o make_v man_n after_o his_o likeness_n he_o transfer_v to_o he_o his_o own_o quality_n therefore_o he_o give_v to_o his_o church_n the_o power_n to_o pardon_v sin_n goodness_n by_o the_o communication_n of_o his_o word_n and_o his_o wisdom_n by_o the_o understanding_n of_o that_o word_n jesus_n christ_n who_o take_v human_a flesh_n have_v bring_v we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o have_v teach_v we_o his_o wisdom_n and_o show_v we_o his_o love_n even_o as_o by_o our_o word_n we_o express_v what_o be_v in_o our_o understanding_n and_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o heart_n which_o god_n also_o do_v to_o we_o when_o he_o send_v we_o his_o word_n upon_o earth_n by_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o humanity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o make_v this_o alhance_n with_o man_n that_o he_o may_v have_v they_o after_o his_o likeness_n therefore_o he_o have_v call_v they_o his_o spouse_n and_o his_o church_n which_o be_v altogether_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a but_o man_n will_v indeed_o disguise_v it_o and_o render_v it_o material_a sensual_a and_o carnal_a in_o give_v the_o name_n of_o church_n to_o man_n who_o do_v not_o possess_v this_o word_n without_o which_o they_o can_v be_v the_o church_n nor_o have_v the_o power_n the_o wisdom_n nor_o the_o love_n which_o god_n give_v to_o his_o lawful_a spouse_n therefore_o they_o may_v great_o err_v and_o fail_v in_o appoint_v and_o approve_v of_o rule_n for_o christian_n and_o whereas_o you_o ask_v whether_o all_o these_o outward_a devotion_n which_o be_v now_o in_o use_n in_o christendom_n be_v good_a and_o save_a i_o doubt_v it_o very_o much_o for_o jesus_n christ_n teach_v not_o such_o variety_n of_o devotion_n as_o we_o see_v now_o adays_o but_o he_o teach_v solid_a and_o inward_a virtue_n 13._o as_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n faith_n to_o believe_v in_o a_o almighty_a god_n of_o who_o we_o hold_v all_o thing_n hope_v to_o hope_n in_o he_o only_o without_o put_v our_o confidence_n in_o any_o other_o thing_n and_o charity_n to_o love_v he_o alone_o without_o place_v our_o affection_n on_o any_o create_a thing_n whether_o in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n these_o be_v the_o instruction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o those_o at_o present_a who_o be_v call_v churchman_n teach_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o resort_v to_o church_n to_o frequent_v the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o say_v a_o great_a many_o vocal_a prayer_n by_o rote_n and_o number_n with_o these_o outward_a thing_n they_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v true_a christian_n which_o can_v be_v since_o christianity_n consist_v in_o a_o spiritual_a 15._o and_o inward_a life_n for_o it_o be_v divine_a and_o not_o humane_a if_o these_o outward_a devotion_n have_v be_v mean_n proper_a for_o we_o to_o become_v good_a christian_n we_o may_v be_v persuade_v that_o jesus_n christ_n will_v have_v teach_v we_o they_o for_o he_o have_v more_o wisdom_n to_o foresee_v our_o need_n and_o weakness_n than_o these_o guide_n of_o soul_n can_v have_v and_o likewise_o more_o love_n to_o take_v care_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v want_v to_o we_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v he_o leave_v only_o his_o word_n to_o serve_v for_o the_o nourishment_n of_o our_o soul_n say_v that_o 50._o it_o be_v the_o bread_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v eat_v it_o shall_v not_o die_v whereas_o these_o person_n give_v we_o only_o the_o eucharist_n for_o nourishment_n in_o which_o the_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n can_v be_v accomplish_v for_o the_o host_n do_v not_o descend_v from_o heaven_n as_o his_o word_n do_v and_o they_o who_o eat_v it_o do_v not_o all_o live_v for_o ever_o for_o we_o see_v abominable_a soul_n even_o sorcerer_n do_v communicate_v frequent_o and_o thereafter_o die_v in_o their_o sin_n we_o see_v also_o bigot_n communicate_v very_o often_o who_o never_o attain_v to_o true_a faith_n nor_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n without_o which_o they_o can_v live_v for_o evel_v how_o then_o shall_v the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v fulfil_v that_o they_o who_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v not_o die_v since_o all_o those_o die_v eternal_o after_o have_v so_o often_o eat_v the_o eucharist_n jesus_n christ_n can_v lie_v for_o ●7_n he_o who_o incorporate_v his_o word_n shall_v never_o die_v because_o it_o give_v life_n and_o nourishment_n to_o the_o soul_n and_o make_v it_o live_v eternal_o i_o say_v to_o she_o this_o be_v suppose_v we_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o a_o time_n of_o great_a darkness_n in_o which_o there_o be_v many_o error_n and_o many_o more_o erroneous_a who_o run_v blind_o to_o damnation_n because_o the_o most_o pious_a hold_n rome_n and_o all_o her_o council_n for_o the_o church_n she_o say_v sir_n the_o devil_n upon_o a_o false_a supposition_n find_v matter_n enough_o to_o raise_v fine_a edifice_n i_o have_v no_o particular_a knowledge_n of_o rome_n nor_o of_o her_o council_n but_o i_o tell_v you_o in_o truth_n if_o the_o pope_n with_o all_o his_o council_n will_v say_v any_o thing_n to_o i_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v he_o nor_o yet_o be_v any_o other_o christian_n the_o bark_n shall_v never_o be_v take_v for_o the_o wood_n because_o it_o can_v never_o beat_v fruit_n as_o the_o tree_n will_v do_v though_o it_o have_v little_a bark_n the_o true_a church_n wherever_o it_o be_v ●_o bring_v forth_o always_o holy_a fruit_n and_o if_o the_o tree_n be_v know_v by_o its_o fruit_n we_o will_v know_v the_o church_n ●0_n by_o what_o it_o bring_v forth_o the_o practice_n of_o those_o who_o be_v member_n of_o rome_n do_v sufficient_o evidence_n to_o i_o that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n can_v be_v the_o author_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o see_v the_o prelate_n attend_v with_o servant_n coach_n and_o train_n like_v to_o secular_a prince_n their_o furniture_n and_o house_n do_v surpass_v they_o i●_n they_o have_v faith_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v man_n be_v poor_a and_o despise_v they_o will_v blush_v for_o shame_n as_o all_o other_o christian_n to_o make_v themselves_o thus_o to_o be_v honour_v their_o faith_n be_v dead_a they_o run_v blind_o to_o damnation_n this_o vail_n which_o be_v put_v before_o their_o eye_n to_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v uphold_v by_o worldly_a honour_n serve_v for_o nothing_o but_o to_o flatter_v they_o and_o to_o render_v they_o insensible_a of_o their_o misery_n for_o if_o the_o church_n have_v have_v need_n of_o temporal_a wealth_n and_o honour_n jesus_n christ_n will_v have_v provide_v it_o sufficient_o for_o all_o appertain_v to_o he_o be_v king_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n he_o know_v all_o the_o revolution_n of_o time_n he_o will_v sure_o have_v foretell_v they_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v permit_v they_o at_o a_o certain_a time_n to_o make_v themselves_o be_v honour_a and_o serve_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o foretell_v ●_o that_o god_n will_v cast_v down_o the_o mighty_a from_o their_o seat_n 1●_n that_o he_o will_v resist_v the_o proud_a and_o will_v exalt_v the_o humble_a and_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o he_o say_v more_o express_o than_o that_o we_o ought_v 29._o to_o learn_v of_o he_o to_o be_v meek_a and_o lowly_a in_o heart_n to_o which_o lesson_n the_o arrogance_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o christian_n now_o be_v direct_o opposite_a and_o they_o who_o may_v be_v call_v by_o their_o proper_a name_n antichristian_o because_o they_o be_v thus_o oppose_v to_o christ_n for_o these_o only_o be_v christian_n who_o put_v in_o practice_n this_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n all_o other_o who_o bear_v this_o name_n without_o do_v it_o be_v nothing_o but_o rot_a member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v better_a they_o be_v cut_v off_o
perfection_n than_o former_o which_o i_o doubt_v very_o much_o for_o if_o you_o think_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n the_o evangelical_n life_n and_o do_v not_o observe_v it_o yourself_o this_o be_v 17._o worse_a than_o to_o hold_v your_o peace_n because_o every_o one_o will_v have_v ground_n to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o formality_n which_o must_v be_v observe_v in_o declare_v the_o gospel_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o put_v it_o in_o practice_n see_v they_o who_o teach_v it_o do_v not_o practice_v it_o themselves_o i_o think_v in_o this_o case_n it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o 21._o than_o not_o to_o practice_v it_o when_o we_o know_v it_o at_o least_o it_o be_v a_o less_o evil_a never_o to_o have_v understand_v it_o than_o to_o have_v know_v it_o and_o not_o to_o practice_v it_o though_o both_o be_v evil_a because_o all_o christian_n be_v oblige_v to_o know_v the_o gospel_n for_o we_o can_v without_o gild_n be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o but_o to_o hear_v it_o so_o often_o and_o for_o all_o this_o not_o to_o desire_v to_o follow_v it_o be_v a_o double_a evil_n because_o of_o the_o ingratitude_n which_o be_v commit_v in_o not_o practise_v what_o we_o know_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o grace_n to_o be_v catch_v and_o a_o ingratitude_n not_o to_o follow_v instruction_n therefore_o you_o will_v do_v nothing_o but_o spend_v yourself_o in_o teach_v and_o will_v not_o replenish_v other_o beside_o that_o in_o teach_v there_o be_v always_o the_o hazard_n of_o vainglory_n because_o flattery_n 5._o be_v the_o ruin_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o persuade_v we_o that_o we_o have_v that_o which_o they_o say_v we_o have_v i_o say_v unto_o she_o that_o infallible_o many_o will_v put_v in_o practice_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o they_o know_v it_o as_o i_o do_v at_o present_a because_o these_o truth_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o of_o necessity_n one_o must_v yield_v to_o they_o she_o say_v sir_n do_v not_o engage_v yourself_o to_o declare_v the_o truth_n which_o god_n now_o make_v know_v to_o you_o for_o they_o will_v not_o be_v well_o receive_v by_o the_o learned_a you_o ought_v first_o to_o have_v overcome_v all_o human_a regard_v which_o you_o have_v not_o yet_o do_v likewise_o you_o must_v have_v the_o courage_n to_o expose_v your_o life_n for_o this_o truth_n for_o otherwise_o you_o will_v be_v oppress_v without_o any_o profit_n because_o they_o will_v outrageous_o persecute_v you_o if_o you_o shall_v declare_v the_o naked_a truth_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n at_o present_a and_o if_o you_o teach_v that_o to_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a one_o must_v observe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o will_v altogether_o oppose_v you_o and_o will_v affirm_v that_o all_o they_o who_o be_v baptize_v be_v christian_n however_o wicked_a they_o be_v thus_o you_o will_v have_v much_o to_o suffer_v and_o will_v profit_v other_o nothing_o because_o all_o that_o you_o may_v build_v up_o by_o teach_v of_o the_o truth_n the_o learned_a will_v destroy_v by_o their_o argument_n and_o will_v easy_o dissuade_v people_n from_o believe_v you_o even_o reject_v your_o doctrine_n as_o evil_a and_o seditious_a for_o they_o study_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o to_o flatter_v the_o world_n 4._o and_o speak_v as_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o hear_v they_o have_v forget_v that_o jesus_n christ_n say_v by_o his_o apostle_n that_o 10._o he_o who_o will_v please_v man_n be_v not_o the_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n there_o can_v be_v no_o preach_v any_o long_o without_o reproof_n but_o what_o flatter_v the_o ear_n and_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o people_n for_o the_o truth_n which_o 15._o reprove_v be_v so_o disapproven_v by_o man_n that_o i_o believe_v sir_n if_o you_o shall_v speak_v public_o the_o truth_n which_o i_o in_o confidence_n have_v tell_v you_o they_o will_v cut_v you_o off_o from_o the_o church_n declare_v you_o a_o heretic_n yea_o they_o will_v even_o pursue_v you_o to_o death_n because_o they_o can_v not_o approve_v the_o truth_n without_o condemn_v themselves_o their_o life_n be_v contrary_a thereto_o and_o no_o body_n hate_v his_o own_o soul_n therefore_o they_o condemn_v other_o i_o ask_v she_o if_o i_o ought_v always_o to_o continue_v idle_a without_o do_v any_o thing_n see_v i_o can_v not_o teach_v nor_o preach_v any_o more_o and_o that_o i_o have_v no_o other_o employment_n for_o that_o i_o have_v pass_v all_o my_o life-time_n in_o study_n and_o in_o the_o direction_n of_o soul_n she_o say_v sir_n labour_v first_o for_o your_o own_o perfection_n until_o you_o be_v entire_o unite_v to_o god_n and_o then_o you_o will_v be_v capable_a of_o other_o thing_n if_o there_o be_v no_o profit_n to_o be_v reap_v among_o the_o catholic_n you_o may_v go_v among_o the_o heathen_n and_o heretic_n who_o will_v be_v more_o dispose_v to_o receive_v the_o truth_n than_o those_o who_o be_v under_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o other_o sin_n through_o ignorance_n and_o these_o romanist_n through_o malice_n many_o heathen_n will_v follow_v the_o truth_n if_o they_o know_v it_o and_o likewise_o divers_a heretic_n because_o they_o seek_v and_o ask_v it_o always_o therefore_o we_o hear_v they_o dispute_v willing_o to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o at_o rest_n but_o seek_v and_o ask_v always_o after_o the_o truth_n but_o 7._o the_o catholic_n do_v opinionate_o presume_v of_o their_o salvation_n because_o they_o esteem_v themselves_o the_o people_n of_o god_n as_o they_o be_v true_o even_o as_o the_o jew_n be_v who_o be_v now_o abandon_v but_o shall_v be_v convert_v 9_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v be_v overthrow_v those_o will_v be_v true_o capable_a of_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n acknowledge_v their_o error_n and_o ignorances_n labour_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n sir_n for_o your_o own_o perfection_n and_o you_o will_v very_o short_o see_v that_o the_o harvest_n will_v be_v ripe_a and_o that_o there_o will_v be_v need_n of_o workman_n we_o approach_v so_o near_o that_o i_o fear_v your_o soul_n will_v not_o have_v so_o soon_o acquire_v its_o own_o perfection_n as_o these_o thing_n will_v come_v to_o pass_v therefore_o make_v haste_n fear_v to_o be_v send_v away_o as_o a_o unprofitable_a servant_n occupy_v the_o talon_n which_o god_n have_v give_v you_o for_o he_o will_v come_v very_o short_o to_o demand_v a_o account_n of_o it_o apply_v yourself_o to_o your_o own_o perfection_n with_o the_o same_o earnestness_n wherewith_o you_o former_o apply_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o other_o without_o any_o profit_n i_o ask_v she_o if_o she_o believe_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v be_v destroy_v and_o ruin_v and_o the_o christian_n scatter_v as_o the_o jew_n be_v at_o present_a she_o reply_v yes_o sir_n and_o much_o more_o for_o the_o jew_n have_v continue_v constant_o in_o the_o jewish_a law_n though_o they_o be_v bodily_a scatter_v through_o all_o the_o world_n they_o be_v nevertheless_o unite_v in_o a_o uniform_a faith_n and_o belief_n hold_v still_o the_o law_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o but_o the_o christian_n 8._o have_v deny_v their_o faith_n though_o they_o be_v yet_o unite_v bodily_a how_o will_v they_o preserve_v it_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n when_o all_o this_o lustre_n and_o this_o magnificence_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v destroy_v so_o that_o there_o shall_v 2._o not_o be_v one_o stone_n upon_o another_o in_o its_o outward_a state_n no_o more_o than_o there_o be_v at_o present_a in_o its_o inward_a this_o must_v needs_o 2._o come_v to_o pass_v sir_n else_o god_n will_v not_o be_v just_o for_o the_o jew_n may_v reproach_n he_o with_o reason_n that_o they_o never_o commit_v such_o a_o infidelity_n against_o their_o god_n as_o the_o christian_n do_v it_o be_v very_o true_a they_o kill_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o that_o be_v through_o 17._o ignorance_n the_o christian_n do_v kill_v it_o a_o thousand_o time_n out_o of_o pure_a malice_n they_o believe_v that_o the_o same_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o they_o give_v it_o daily_o unto_o whore_n thief_n murderer_n and_o sorcerer_n and_o yet_o they_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o they_o shall_v thereby_o receive_v grace_n the_o jew_n never_o believe_v that_o they_o obtain_v grace_n in_o put_v jesus_n christ_n to_o death_n as_o these_o christian_n do_v believe_v in_o receive_v he_o unworthy_o 24._o for_o pilate_n say_v that_o he_o find_v no_o fault_n in_o he_o and_o be_v in_o great_a fear_n to_o condemn_v he_o and_o the_o christian_n go_v affronted_o to_o receive_v he_o with_o a_o soul_n full_a of_o sin_n believe_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o impart_v unto_o they_o his_o grace_n in_o
roman_n catholic_n though_o this_o they_o hold_v for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o her_o communion_n this_o be_v very_o ill_o conceive_v since_o god_n be_v universal_a and_o he_o be_v to_o be_v find_v every_o where_o by_o those_o who_o seek_v and_o worship_v he_o for_o he_o be_v not_o fix_v to_o any_o material_a body_n all_o soul_n who_o take_v their_o delight_n in_o he_o be_v his_o spouse_n call_v they_o by_o what_o name_n or_o religion_n you_o please_v for_o all_o these_o different_a name_n or_o opinion_n do_v not_o make_v a_o christian_n but_o only_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n make_v a_o christian_n and_o all_o those_o who_o put_v in_o practice_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v christian_n and_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n even_o though_o they_o be_v turk_n or_o heathen_n of_o which_o profession_n i_o believe_v several_a condemn_v and_o judge_v the_o nominal_a and_o profess_v christian_n since_o god_n have_v 34._o no_o respect_n of_o person_n and_o will_v judge_v all_o man_n according_a 6._o to_o their_o work_n this_o the_o scripture_n confirm_v say_v 37._o by_o your_o work_n you_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o by_o your_o work_n you_o shall_v be_v condemn_v and_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o teach_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n his_o father_n to_o the_o samaritan_n woman_n and_o to_o many_o other_o nation_n who_o be_v not_o jew_n say_v to_o his_o apostle_n 16._o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v he_o even_o eat_v and_o converse_v with_o sinner_n to_o see_v if_o any_o of_o they_o will_v receive_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o father_n and_o put_v they_o in_o practice_n and_o though_o at_o first_o he_o reject_v the_o canaanitish_a woman_n as_o a_o dog_n yet_o he_o show_v her_o grace_n and_o mercy_n by_o her_o conversion_n and_o persevere_v humility_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n he_o say_v to_o christian_n 12._o that_o publican_n and_o sinner_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v cast_v out_o which_o still_o far_o confirm_v this_o truth_n that_o religion_n do_v not_o save_v a_o man_n but_o the_o love_n of_o god_n that_o sanctisy_n he_o this_o make_v i_o get_v over_o all_o humane_a respect_n and_o declare_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v ask_v i_o by_o so_o many_o different_a conference_n all_o about_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o at_o that_o time_n i_o know_v no_o other_o religion_n and_o with_o compassion_n i_o book_v upon_o all_o those_o who_o die_v out_o of_o the_o roman●_n church_n as_o damn_v as_o our_o divine_n teach_v so_o that_o be_v ask_v by_o a_o romish_a priest_n i_o answer_v plain_o to_o all_o his_o question_n upon_o which_o many_o take_v occasion_n to_o say_v that_o i_o have_v change_v my_o religion_n and_o be_v become_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v not_o true_a since_o be_v bear_v in_o it_o i_o will_v live_v and_o die_v therein_o without_o change_a name_n or_o religion_n but_o only_o my_o manner_n and_o life_n and_o will_v endeavour_v to_o be_v regenerate_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o follow_v and_o imitate_v he_o even_o to_o death_n let_v ignorant_a man_n say_v and_o judge_v of_o i_o as_o they_o please_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o offer_v this_o light_n of_o the_o world_n to_o all_o good_a soul_n who_o seek_v the_o truth_n and_o desire_v to_o become_v true_a christian_n that_o they_o may_v true_o discern_v reality_n from_o appearance_n for_o this_o prevail_v now_o through_o all_o the_o world_n among_o all_o sort_n of_o sect_n and_o religion_n where_o every_o one_o cleave_v to_o the_o bark_n and_o do_v not_o touch_v the_o wood_n fancy_v that_o virtue_n consist_v in_o have_v a_o fine_a religious_a name_n of_o that_o of_o the_o reform_a the_o evangelick_n the_o catholic_n yea_o that_o they_o be_v person_n guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o which_o the_o quaker_n boast_v though_o all_o these_o sort_n of_o name_n be_v false_a and_o not_o at_o all_o suitable_a to_o the_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o those_o who_o call_v themselves_o so_o for_o if_o they_o who_o be_v call_v reform_v be_v true_o so_o we_o will_v see_v the_o reformation_n in_o their_o life_n and_o manner_n whereas_o we_o find_v they_o all_o live_v according_a to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o the_o scripture_n say_v 50._o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o be_v neither_o reform_v in_o their_o movable_n nor_o their_o apparel_n nor_o in_o their_o eat_v or_o drink_v they_o seek_v in_o all_o the_o fine_a and_o the_o best_a they_o labour_v and_o trade_n diligent_o that_o they_o may_v have_v wherewith_o to_o maintain_v themselves_o in_o pomp_n excess_n or_o plenty_n as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v without_o bridle_v their_o fleshly_a appetite_n or_o their_o sensuality_n in_o any_o thing_n still_o covet_v more_o that_o they_o may_v give_v it_o as_o much_o satisfaction_n as_o they_o can_v that_o in_o this_o world_n they_o may_v have_v ease_n honour_n and_o pleasure_n thus_o they_o be_v call_v reform_v though_o in_o effect_n they_o will_v not_o reform_v themselves_o in_o the_o least_o thing_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o they_o who_o call_v themselves_o reform_v bear_v a_o false_a name_n that_o make_v they_o hypocrite_n and_o deceiver_n of_o other_o and_o of_o themselves_o as_o those_o also_o be_v deceive_v who_o call_v themselves_o the_o evangelick_n for_o in_o all_o their_o work_n and_o practice_n there_o be_v nothing_o conformable_a to_o the_o gospel_n but_o all_o direct_o opposite_a to_o it_o for_o they_o do_v not_o observe_v so_o much_o as_o one_o point_n of_o the_o evangelical_n council_n for_o instead_o of_o love_v voluntary_a poverty_n they_o love_v the_o abundance_n and_o riches_n of_o this_o world_n unsatiable_o and_o they_o who_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o guide_n to_o those_o evangelical_n perfection_n be_v the_o far_a remove_v from_o they_o abandon_v their_o flock_n and_o church_n to_o find_v other_o that_o afford_v they_o more_o temporal_a profit_n they_o be_v far_o from_o imitate_v the_o apostle_n who_o say_v 8._o free_o i_o have_v receive_v and_o free_o i_o give_v thou_o since_o these_o modern_a evangelick_n give_v at_o the_o great_a price_n and_o to_o he_o that_o bid_v most_o and_o therefore_o they_o do_v not_o just_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o evangelick_n since_o they_o neither_o teach_v nor_o practise_v so_o much_o as_o one_o council_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o have_v nothing_o but_o false_a name_n and_o parade_n that_o they_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n what_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n no_o more_o than_o those_o be_v catholic_n who_o bear_n the_o name_n since_o to_o call_v one_o a_o catholic_n be_v to_o say_v he_o be_v a_o person_n join_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n which_o these_o be_v not_o who_o call_v themselves_o catholic_n since_o we_o perceive_v not_o any_o holiness_n in_o their_o life_n but_o much_o vice_n and_o injustice_n accompany_v with_o hypocrisy_n and_o seem_a virtue_n without_o any_o reality_n or_o sanctification_n they_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v abraham_n child_n without_o do_v the_o work_n of_o abraham_n or_o that_o they_o be_v christian_n without_o observe_v the_o command_v of_o christ_n they_o content_v themselves_o to_o be_v call_v catholic_n without_o conform_v their_o life_n to_o those_o who_o live_v holy_o upon_o the_o earth_n who_o life_n and_o history_n they_o read_v without_o endeavour_v to_o become_v holy_a as_o they_o be_v who_o feast_n s_o they_o solemnize_v though_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v in_o their_o communion_n nor_o true_o catholic_n till_o in_o their_o life_n they_o follow_v their_o virtue_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o straight_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o life_n so_o that_o this_o name_n of_o catholic_n will_v condemn_v they_o rather_o than_o justify_v they_o whereas_o they_o presume_v to_o be_v prefer_v by_o god_n to_o all_o other_o religion_n because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o perfect_a religion_n according_a to_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n which_o they_o bear_v this_o will_v real_o be_v if_o their_o soul_n be_v unite_v to_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n which_o only_o and_o no_o other_o thing_n make_v a_o catholic_n by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o these_o person_n bear_v a_o false_a name_n since_o they_o presume_v of_o their_o salvation_n because_o of_o the_o name_n catholic_n and_o be-believe_a they_o be_v in_o the_o true_a church_n out_o of_o which_o they_o say_v there_o be_v no_o salvation_n this_o will_v be_v true_a if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o only_a communion_n of_o saint_n but_o because_o
the_o bad_a have_v the_o freewill_n of_o their_o child_n join_v to_o their_o own_o and_o may_v save_v and_o damn_v the_o soul_n of_o their_o child_n as_o they_o may_v save_v and_o damn_v their_o own_o soul_n because_o they_o be_v inseparable_o join_v and_o unite_v together_o for_o good_a and_o for_o evil_a so_o that_o baptism_n can_v save_v the_o soul_n of_o a_o child_n who_o be_v without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o the_o freewill_n of_o his_o parent_n and_o the_o want_n of_o this_o baptism_n can_v hinder_v the_o salvation_n of_o a_o infant_n who_o be_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o the_o freewill_n of_o his_o parent_n though_o he_o shall_v die_v without_o be_v baptize_v for_o if_o this_o outward_a baptism_n be_v so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o they_o who_o follow_v they_o will_v have_v baptize_v young_a infant_n and_o likewise_o all_o those_o immediate_o who_o come_v in_o to_o be_v christian_n on_o the_o contrary_a they_o keep_v many_o in_o the_o state_n of_o catehcuman_n for_o a_o long_a space_n of_o time_n during_o which_o they_o may_v die_v as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v many_o do_v those_o who_o have_v the_o will_n to_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n perfect_o shall_v they_o have_v be_v damn_v for_o not_o have_v receive_v the_o outward_a sign_n of_o baptism_n no_o no_o sir_n it_o do_v not_o go_v so_o before_o god_n as_o man_n make_v we_o believe_v for_o a_o real_a desire_n only_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n be_v capable_a to_o save_v we_o even_o though_o we_o shall_v die_v without_o baptism_n because_o god_n 10._o search_v the_o heart_n and_o try_v the_o reins_o 21._o have_v more_o regard_n to_o the_o baptism_n of_o desire_n than_o to_o that_o of_o water_n which_o be_v give_v only_o to_o confirm_v the_o will_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o if_o we_o shall_v be_v surprise_v with_o death_n ere_o we_o have_v make_v this_o outward_a confirmation_n we_o shall_v not_o for_o this_o cease_v to_o enjoy_v eternal_a life_n and_o to_o reign_v with_o god_n in_o his_o glory_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o many_o father_n have_v write_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o be_v baptize_v and_o that_o it_o be_v teach_v through_o all_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o baptism_n give_v salvation_n to_o all_o those_o who_o receive_v it_o that_o it_o even_o cleanse_v from_o all_o actual_a sin_n if_o we_o have_v be_v defile_v with_o they_o before_o baptism_n she_o say_v i_o know_v not_o what_o the_o father_n say_v nor_o what_o be_v teach_v by_o all_o the_o romanist_n but_o i_o declare_v to_o you_o what_o god_n make_v i_o know_v and_o understand_v in_o the_o inward_a of_o my_o soul_n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o all_o they_o who_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v for_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v that_o 16._o they_o who_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v now_o infant_n new_o bear_v be_v not_o capable_a of_o believe_v and_o if_o their_o parent_n be_v wicked_a they_o likewise_o have_v not_o faith_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o their_o child_n how_o therefore_o can_v baptism_n work_v faith_n since_o jesus_n christ_n place_n it_o before_o baptism_n faith_n 16._o must_v be_v the_o chief_a piece_n for_o work_a salvation_n which_o be_v want_v baptism_n can_v do_v nothing_o how_o will_v you_o therefore_o have_v wicked_a child_n to_o be_v save_v by_o baptism_n for_o example_n a_o sorceress_n be_v with_o child_n gives_z her_o soul_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o also_o that_o of_o the_o child_n which_o she_o bear_v and_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o come_v into_o the_o world_n it_o be_v carry_v to_o baptism_n and_o thereafter_o die_v by_o what_o do_v you_o think_v that_o this_o child_n shall_v be_v save_v if_o it_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o have_v faith_n and_o if_o its_o parent_n have_v deny_v 6._o god_n shall_v the_o water_n of_o baptism_n alone_o have_v more_o force_n than_o the_o freewill_n of_o its_o parent_n who_o will_v give_v it_o to_o the_o devil_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o will_n can_v god_n resist_v their_o will_n after_o have_v give_v they_o the_o power_n of_o enjoy_v this_o freewill_n both_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o own_o salvation_n and_o that_o of_o their_o child_n we_o see_v that_o by_o a_o exact_a justice_n subject_n bear_v the_o punishment_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o king_n 24._o as_o david_n people_n be_v chastise_v for_o the_o adultery_n and_o murder_n which_o their_o king_n have_v commit_v how_o shall_v not_o child_n bear_v it_o with_o much_o more_o reason_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o parent_n 4._o who_o have_v much_o more_o of_o union_n and_o dependence_n than_o the_o king_n with_o his_o subject_n who_o have_v nothing_o over_o they_o but_o a_o voluntary_a submission_n which_o they_o yield_v to_o he_o i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o no_o christian_n doubt_v but_o that_o a_o man_n must_v be_v baptize_v to_o be_v save_v and_o that_o none_o can_v enter_v into_o paradise_n without_o have_v receive_v baptism_n to_o which_o she_o reply_v sir_n if_o this_o be_v true_a it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a unhappiness_n to_o many_o good_a man_n who_o be_v dead_a long_o ago_o because_o many_o be_v not_o baptize_v aright_o through_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o may_v be_v do_v not_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o baptism_n through_o neglect_n or_o his_o mind_n be_v carry_v otherwise_o or_o he_o have_v not_o the_o intent_n to_o baptize_v or_o which_o be_v worse_o if_o the_o priest_n who_o baptize_v be_v a_o sorcerer_n as_o it_o fall_v out_o but_o too_o often_o and_o instead_o of_o baptise_v child_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v give_v they_o to_o the_o devil_n all_o these_o person_n ill_o baptize_v must_v according_a to_o your_o say_v be_v damn_v even_o though_o they_o shall_v have_v live_v holy_o in_o case_n this_o baptism_n be_v so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n god_n will_v be_v cruel_a thus_o to_o damn_v person_n for_o the_o fault_n of_o some_o wicked_a priest_n who_o have_v no_o relation_n neither_o to_o their_o soul_n nor_o their_o body_n nevertheless_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o save_v or_o damn_v all_o those_o who_o he_o shall_v baptize_v true_o sir_n these_o sentiment_n which_o they_o have_v of_o god_n be_v insupportable_a to_o i_o because_o they_o contradict_v his_o justice_n and_o truth_n they_o must_v be_v ignorant_a of_o he_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v yield_v up_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n to_o the_o disposal_n of_o some_o wicked_a man_n who_o adhere_v to_o the_o devil_n may_v give_v he_o all_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o who_o he_o shall_v baptize_v if_o he_o leave_v we_o the_o freewill_n 17._o to_o save_v or_o damn_v ourselves_o and_o that_o he_o himself_o will_v not_o reserve_v this_o power_n over_o we_o but_o still_o leave_v our_o freewill_n 3._o to_o act_v without_o force_v we_o to_o salvation_n nor_o yet_o hinder_v our_o damnation_n when_o such_o be_v our_o will_n how_o shall_v he_o give_v to_o a_o man_n the_o power_n of_o be_v able_a to_o damn_v we_o by_o a_o evil_a baptism_n there_o can_v be_v no_o appearance_n of_o truth_n in_o this_o and_o if_o it_o be_v difficult_a for_o you_o to_o believe_v that_o parent_n have_v the_o freewill_n of_o their_o child_n in_o their_o power_n how_o be_v it_o not_o much_o more_o uneasy_a to_o you_o to_o believe_v that_o a_o priest_n shall_v have_v the_o power_n to_o damn_v so_o many_o person_n through_o his_o fault_n of_o not_o have_v the_o intention_n to_o baptize_v they_o aright_o for_o parent_n have_v contribute_v to_o the_o formation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o their_o child_n whereas_o this_o priest_n have_v never_o know_v they_o and_o what_o jesus_n christ_n say_v to_o the_o young_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n 17._o that_o to_o be_v save_v he_o must_v keep_v the_o commandment_n will_v not_o be_v true_a in_o case_n baptism_n be_v so_o necessary_a see_v he_o who_o shall_v keep_v they_o without_o be_v baptize_v can_v not_o be_v save_v since_o salvation_n depend_v on_o baptism_n i_o be_v so_o convince_v by_o such_o powerful_a reason_n that_o i_o know_v not_o what_o to_o reply_v nevertheless_o i_o yet_o say_v to_o she_o that_o faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n with_o baptism_n but_o that_o it_o be_v suppose_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o parent_n supply_n that_o of_o the_o child_n and_o that_o the_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n be_v likewise_o take_v to_o confirm_v it_o in_o name_n of_o the_o child_n she_o say_v sir_n it_o be_v a_o ill-contrived_a thing_n to_o baptize_v child_n before_o the_o use_v of_o reason_n for_o they_o can_v have_v faith_n and_o their_o parent_n or_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n be_v also_o sometime_o void_a of_o it_o they_o content_v themselves_o
himself_o and_o nothing_o can_v resemble_v he_o but_o this_o free_a power_n of_o his_o will._n though_o he_o have_v create_v man_n soul_n divine_a this_o have_v be_v but_o a_o limit_a spirit_n without_o this_o freewill_n which_o must_v certain_o concur_v to_o complete_a the_o delight_n which_o god_n will_v take_v with_o man_n for_o as_o a_o king_n can_v take_v no_o contentment_n in_o recreate_v himself_o with_o a_o slave_n as_o he_o will_v do_v with_o a_o queen_n who_o be_v near_o his_o quality_n so_o god_n will_v make_v man_n in_o his_o full_a liberty_n and_o capable_a of_o use_v his_o freewill_n full_o that_o in_o this_o liberty_n he_o may_v be_v some_o way_n like_o to_o he_o this_o be_v do_v 29._o he_o can_v repent_v of_o any_o thing_n but_o let_v man_n enjoy_v his_o gift_n however_o he_o abuse_v they_o his_o righteousness_n and_o constancy_n will_v not_o let_v he_o withdraw_v or_o take_v from_o he_o what_o he_o have_v once_o give_v he_o but_o he_o leave_v it_o he_o and_o will_v leave_v it_o to_o all_o eternity_n whether_o man_n save_v or_o damn_v himself_o freewill_n shall_v never_o be_v take_v from_o he_o for_o god_n be_v not_o changeable_a in_o his_o gift_n no_o more_o than_o in_o all_o his_o work_n this_o be_v so_o 4._o he_o can_v hinder_v the_o romanist_n from_o kill_v any_o body_n among_o they_o who_o will_v be_v the_o true_a church_n without_o bound_v or_o limit_v the_o freewill_n that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v this_o but_o his_o goodness_n prevent_v their_o malice_n will_v move_v his_o church_n 39_o to_o withdraw_v out_o of_o their_o power_n or_o to_o hide_v herself_o as_o jesus_n christ_n hide_v himself_o to_o avoid_v the_o jew_n tyranny_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o exercise_v his_o goodness_n towards_o his_o church_n and_o leave_v those_o man_n of_o ill_a will_n in_o the_o liberty_n that_o he_o have_v give_v they_o who_o do_v only_o the_o mischief_n that_o be_v in_o their_o power_n and_o can_v reach_v the_o do_v those_o which_o the_o good_a by_o their_o light_n and_o foresight_n can_v avoid_v it_o be_v thus_o sir_n that_o i_o say_v god_n can_v not_o preserve_v his_o church_n among_o these_o romanist_n because_o he_o will_v never_o use_v his_o power_n against_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o right_n that_o he_o have_v give_v they_o to_o use_v their_o freewill_n sir_n we_o ought_v always_o to_o take_v thing_n in_o their_o source_n or_o else_o we_o will_v utter_v calumny_n against_o god_n either_o in_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o powerful_a to_o hinder_v evil_a nor_o almighty_a to_o preserve_v his_o own_o or_o not_o just_a in_o not_o let_v cause_n work_v according_a to_o the_o order_n in_o which_o he_o have_v establish_v they_o which_o will_v be_v so_o many_o blasphemy_n because_o god_n can_v never_o do_v any_o evil_n for_o he_o be_v the_o source_n of_o all_o good_a he_o can_v permit_v injustice_n for_o he_o be_v perfect_a righteousness_n and_o likewise_o he_o can_v against_o promise_n take_v from_o he_o the_o freewill_n that_o he_o have_v once_o give_v he_o but_o he_o do_v all_o his_o work_n in_o such_o perfection_n that_o 15._o goodness_n righteousness_n faith_n and_o truth_n concur_v in_o all_o in_o a_o excellent_a harmony_n which_o ravish_v the_o understanding_n of_o he_o who_o consider_v they_o i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o the_o impression_n of_o dependence_n on_o this_o roman_a church_n be_v as_o it_o be_v naturalize_v in_o my_o soul_n and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v very_o ill_a in_o i_o to_o leave_v she_o altogether_o though_o i_o absolute_o desire_v to_o resign_v myself_o entire_o unto_o god_n she_o say_v sir_n be_v not_o any_o way_n trouble_v continue_v confident_o under_o the_o roman_a church_n provide_v you_o do_v not_o follow_v in_o she_o but_o that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o itself_o abundance_n can_v hurt_v after_o you_o shall_v be_v entire_o resign_v unto_o god_n he_o will_v uphold_v you_o and_o will_v govern_v you_o through_o all_o the_o more_o you_o shall_v be_v unite_v to_o he_o the_o more_o you_o will_v partake_v of_o his_o virtue_n and_o his_o light_n shall_v be_v give_v you_o more_o clear_o to_o discover_v the_o truth_n of_o every_o thing_n you_o be_v now_o yet_o a_o courtier_n of_o this_o roman_a church_n therefore_o you_o love_v she_o and_o will_v feign_v excuse_v her_o fault_n that_o you_o may_v not_o be_v oblige_v to_o forsake_v she_o which_o likewise_o you_o ought_v not_o to_o do_v by_o the_o inducement_n of_o any_o but_o if_o you_o approach_v to_o god_n you_o will_v partake_v of_o this_o light_n as_o the_o ray_n partake_v of_o the_o sun_n according_a as_o it_o be_v near_o it_o when_o you_o shall_v partake_v of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n you_o will_v see_v with_o a_o upright_a eye_n the_o injustice_n of_o this_o roman_a church_n and_o when_o you_o shall_v partake_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n you_o will_v discover_v their_o lie_n and_o have_v partake_v of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n you_o will_v discover_v that_o malice_n which_o now_o you_o can_v scarce_o believe_v for_o all_o the_o perfection_n of_o god_n do_v assure_o discover_v the_o imperfection_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o he_o labour_v therefore_o sir_n to_o find_v this_o union_n with_o god_n and_o be_v not_o trouble_v under_o who_o dependence_n you_o be_v rome_n can_v hurt_v you_o when_o you_o hearken_v to_o none_o but_o god_n we_o need_v not_o be_v at_o the_o trouble_n to_o learn_v where_o the_o true_a church_n be_v for_o she_o will_v be_v in_o we_o as_o long_o as_o we_o possess_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o only_o make_v up_o the_o holy_a church_n it_o remain_v only_o that_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o beware_v of_o the_o seduction_n which_o be_v creep_v in_o there_o this_o be_v what_o jesus_n christ_n have_v so_o often_o warn_v we_o of_o in_o his_o gospel_n sa_v 24._o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n who_o will_v come_v deceitful_o and_o shall_v seduce_v many_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n shall_v arise_v who_o shall_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a deceive_v the_o very_a elect._n he_o neither_o speak_v of_o turk_n nor_o of_o heathen_n but_o of_o false_a christ_n the_o seven_o conference_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o ecclesiastical_a function_n i_o ask_v she_o how_o i_o shall_v behave_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o mass_n and_o other_o function_n of_o my_o charge_n she_o say_v sir_n do_v all_o this_o in_o the_o spirit_n that_o god_n require_v you_o to_o do_v it_o in_o because_o there_o be_v great_a abuse_n in_o this_o for_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o what_o they_o make_v we_o believe_v of_o they_o many_o superstition_n have_v creep_v into_o they_o against_o god_n honour_n and_o our_o salvation_n therefore_o you_o must_v always_o join_v your_o intention_n with_o what_o 5._o god_n may_v have_v in_o these_o thing_n or_o otherwise_o you_o will_v commit_v many_o fault_n and_o will_v likewise_o deceive_v other_o for_o my_o part_n i_o believe_v the_o mass_n represent_v the_o communion_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v with_o his_o apostle_n who_o eat_v and_o drink_v with_o they_o every_o day_n bless_v the_o bread_n and_o break_v it_o to_o distribute_v they_o which_o the_o apostle_n 46._o continue_v to_o do_v with_o their_o disciple_n and_o afterward_o all_o the_o primitive_a christian_n who_o assemble_v every_o day_n to_o eat_v together_o and_o blessing_n god_n impart_v to_o every_o one_o as_o he_o have_v need_n which_o maintain_v and_o nourish_v among_o they_o the_o true_a charity_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v leave_v they_o by_o testament_n 55._o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o because_o without_o this_o charity_n no_o body_n can_v be_v save_v as_o st._n paul_n assure_v we_o 4._o though_o one_o can_v even_o remove_v mountain_n though_o he_o give_v all_o his_o good_n to_o the_o poor_a yea_o his_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v etc._n etc._n all_o this_o will_v be_v nothing_o without_o charity_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v recommend_v to_o all_o his_o disciple_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n this_o be_v now_o out_o of_o use_n and_o instead_o of_o nourish_v and_o maintain_v it_o by_o these_o daily_a 2._o meeting_n of_o christian_n those_o who_o do_v assemble_v to_o eat_v and_o drink_v blessing_n god_n for_o what_o he_o bestow_v on_o they_o they_o have_v change_v it_o into_o the_o mass_n which_o we_o observe_v to_o this_o day_n with_o little_a profit_n and_o salvation_n except_o that_o the_o intention_n of_o some_o may_v be_v to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o desire_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v when_o he_o appoint_v it_o and_o leave_v it_o in_o his_o testament_n it_o be_v to_o this_o i_o exhort_v you_o sir_n that_o you_o
you_o will_v hinder_v i_o from_o hear_v god_n perfect_o it_o be_v true_a you_o do_v i_o no_o hurt_n when_o you_o look_v upon_o my_o action_n as_o humane_a but_o you_o can_v profit_v by_o they_o it_o be_v much_o better_a that_o you_o seek_v god_n pure_o and_o leave_v i_o alone_o to_o enjoy_v he_o more_o particular_o because_o the_o least_o unprofitableness_n do_v always_o darken_v the_o soul_n i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o of_o many_o different_a thing_n which_o may_v give_v you_o light_n into_o the_o secret_n of_o god_n and_o your_o own_o salvation_n and_o particular_a perfection_n there_o remain_v only_o to_o put_v they_o in_o practice_n read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o will_v confirm_v you_o in_o all_o that_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o and_o give_v credit_n to_o nothing_o but_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v he_o who_o he_o will_v that_o speak_v to_o you_o 11._o for_o all_o man_n be_v liar_n and_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o believe_v i_o for_o you_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v any_o thing_n because_o i_o say_v it_o to_o you_o but_o only_o because_o it_o be_v real_o true_a and_o if_o you_o know_v i_o you_o shall_v also_o know_v god_n because_o 17._o he_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n in_o all_o thing_n so_o far_o as_o you_o shall_v discern_v righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n in_o any_o person_n so_o far_o shall_v you_o discern_v god_n live_v in_o they_o and_o no_o far_o so_o that_o it_o be_v never_o good_a to_o follow_v person_n for_o themselves_o but_o to_o follow_v the_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n which_o you_o shall_v discover_v to_o abide_v in_o they_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o have_v their_o bodily_a presence_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o accompany_v they_o with_o spirit_n and_o will_n in_o their_o righteousness_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o she_o ought_v not_o to_o deprive_v i_o of_o her_o company_n since_o it_o give_v i_o so_o much_o light_n and_o good_a purpose_n and_o that_o i_o hear_v her_o discourse_n as_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n but_o that_o i_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o strength_n enough_o to_o put_v they_o in_o practice_n that_o i_o will_v be_v constrain_v to_o accompany_v some_o other_o person_n because_o i_o can_v not_o stay_v alone_o she_o say_v sir_n if_o you_o do_v this_o you_o be_v undo_v for_o now_o you_o will_v meet_v with_o no_o body_n in_o the_o world_n that_o possess_v these_o three_o quality_n of_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n and_o consequent_o you_o seek_v in_o vain_a among_o man_n what_o you_o will_v certain_o find_v with_o god_n from_o who_o man_n will_v divert_v you_o and_o fill_v your_o mind_n with_o their_o own_o idea_n and_o imagination_n entice_v you_o to_o follow_v they_o though_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n yet_o they_o think_v they_o be_v and_o willing_o draw_v over_o every_o one_o to_o their_o error_n while_o they_o even_o believe_v they_o be_v do_v well_o be_v on_o your_o guard_n sir_n for_o we_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o dangerous_a time_n foretell_v by_o jesus_n christ_n wherein_o 11._o many_o false_a prophet_n shall_v arise_v and_o shall_v deceive_v many_o obey_v these_o warning_n and_o let_v not_o yourself_o be_v deceive_v for_o many_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v in_o league_n with_o satan_n and_o do_v deceive_v many_o remember_v still_o that_o we_o live_v now_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o god_n 8._o at_o his_o come_v find_v no_o more_o faith_n in_o israel_n that_o be_v among_o his_o people_n for_o all_o have_v deny_v he_o faith_n consist_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o word_n of_o god_n who_o be_v there_o now_o a-days_o that_o hear_v his_o word_n and_o act_n according_a to_o it_o the_o christian_n be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n nevertheless_o none_o of_o they_o have_v faith_n for_o if_o they_o do_v believe_v in_o one_o only_a god_n they_o will_v not_o make_v so_o many_o idol_n that_o each_o one_o have_v his_o particular_a idol_n one_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o his_o wealth_n another_o of_o his_o honour_n another_o of_o his_o wisdom_n and_o so_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n which_o they_o adore_v and_o esteem_v so_o that_o none_o have_v any_o long_a faith_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a true_a god_n who_o we_o ought_v to_o worship_n nor_o yet_o the_o other_o thing_n which_o god_n teach_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a prophet_n his_o apostle_n and_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o the_o church_n have_v no_o long_a faith_n to_o believe_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v practise_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n these_o seem_v to_o be_v but_o story_n of_o the_o ancient_a time_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a now_o to_o put_v they_o in_o practice_n so_o that_o the_o word_n be_v now_o fulfil_v which_o say_v that_o when_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v he_o shall_v not_o find_v faith_n in_o israel_n he_o be_v come_v and_o he_o find_v no_o faith_n in_o his_o people_n therefore_o take_v good_a heed_n sir_n of_o apply_v to_o any_o body_n because_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n now_o among_o christian_n but_o many_o deceiver_n and_o seducer_n continue_v rather_o alone_o or_o follow_v i_o yet_o a_o little_a the_o fourteen_o conference_n that_o the_o habit_n do_v not_o make_v the_o monk_n and_o that_o religion_n of_o themselves_o make_v none_o holy_a of_o the_o corruption_n of_o they_o and_o of_o the_o church_n i_o ask_v she_o how_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o long_o faith_n in_o israel_n and_o yet_o so_o great_a a_o number_n profess_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o in_o particular_a so_o many_o devote_v themselves_o to_o god_n in_o cloister_n and_o monastery_n that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o observe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n she_o say_v it_o be_v true_a sir_n a_o great_a many_o profess_v to_o be_v christian_n but_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v not_o so_o while_o you_o converse_v in_o the_o world_n do_v you_o observe_v any_o that_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o deny_v himself_o that_o choose_v the_o last_o place_n or_o the_o least_o when_o he_o may_v have_v a_o better_a and_o so_o many_o other_o thing_n teach_v and_o observe_v by_o jesus_n christ_n i_o know_v indeed_o you_o will_v answer_v i_o no_o and_o i_o ask_v you_o if_o there_o can_v be_v other_o christian_n than_o those_o which_o follow_v his_o doctrine_n they_o call_v none_o a_o calvinist_n but_o he_o who_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o calvin_n nor_o a_o lutheran_n but_o he_o who_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n and_o why_o will_v they_o reckon_v those_o 9_o to_o be_v christian_n who_o do_v it_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o bear_v the_o title_n false_o and_o they_o lie_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o they_o be_v not_o christian_n before_o god_n if_o they_o do_v not_o observe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n they_o but_o flatter_v themselves_o to_o believe_v it_o and_o deceive_v themselves_o to_o doubt_v it_o do_v you_o need_v any_o other_o evidence_n sir_n than_o your_o own_o understanding_n which_o see_v and_o comprehend_v clear_o enough_o that_o these_o who_o be_v now_o call_v christian_n do_v not_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n neither_o in_o his_o doctrine_n nor_o in_o his_o work_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o christian_n but_o in_o word_n and_o in_o picture_n have_v nothing_o of_o true_a christianity_n neither_o follow_v christ_n at_o a_o distance_n nor_o near_o at_o hand_n on_o the_o contrary_a their_o life_n and_o manner_n be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o the_o life_n and_o manner_n which_o jesus_n christ_n lay_v before_o we_o for_o a_o example_n when_o he_o live_v upon_o earth_n nevertheless_o you_o ask_v i_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o long_a faith_n in_o israel_n and_o i_o ask_v how_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v yet_o christian_n upon_o earth_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o they_o who_o retire_v from_o the_o world_n to_o become_v religious_a or_o enter_v into_o cloister_n ought_v precise_o to_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n since_o they_o make_v solemn_a and_o particular_a vow_n she_o say_v sir_n do_v you_o not_o see_v that_o these_o vow_n be_v not_o well_o observe_v they_o vow_v chastity_n poverty_n and_o obedience_n remark_n if_o this_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o cloister_n or_o among_o the_o monk_n these_o be_v only_o outward_a thing_n which_o seem_v as_o little_a obligatory_a as_o baptism_n seem_v for_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o be_v observe_v and_o after_o the_o outward_a ceremony_n be_v perform_v they_o do_v not_o think_v any_o long_o on_o the_o promise_v they_o have_v
upon_o all_o the_o earth_n 2._o that_o they_o who_o shall_v kill_v you_o for_o the_o truth_n shall_v think_v 2._o they_o do_v god_n service_n for_o satan_n power_n be_v so_o great_a and_o universal_a that_o it_o have_v almost_o blind_v all_o man_n and_o their_o spirit_n be_v infatuate_v they_o take_v that_o which_o be_v false_a to_o be_v real_a and_o esteem_n lie_v more_o than_o the_o truth_n and_o all_o this_o be_v so_o well_o mask_v with_o virtue_n and_o sanctity_n that_o even_o the_o best_a man_n will_v think_v they_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n when_o they_o kill_v you_o therefore_o take_v heed_n always_o sir_n that_o you_o give_v not_o the_o child_n bread_n to_o dog_n nor_o cast_v pearl_n before_o swine_n but_o try_v well_o before_o you_o speak_v to_o any_o if_o he_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o righteousness_n or_o some_o other_o of_o the_o eight_o beatitude_n which_o be_v the_o mark_n that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v whereby_o to_o discover_v those_o who_o shall_v be_v bless_v and_o shall_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o you_o shall_v meet_v with_o opposition_n to_o the_o truth_n leave_v off_o to_o tell_v it_o and_o never_o move_v in_o that_o which_o will_v avail_v nothing_o for_o god_n have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v short_o bruise_v satan_n under_o your_o foot_n yet_o a_o little_a while_o the_o devil_n have_v his_o empire_n 12._o which_o increase_v great_o and_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v at_o a_o end_n god_n will_v bruise_v he_o under_o the_o foot_n of_o his_o faithful_a servant_n who_o shall_v 19_o triumph_v over_o all_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n but_o they_o must_v yet_o suffer_v a_o little_a and_o 10._o continue_v faithful_a unto_o death_n the_o seventeen_o conference_n that_o the_o jew_n and_o heathen_n be_v better_o dispose_v to_o be_v convert_v unto_o god_n than_o the_o christian_n and_o that_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v restore_v and_o the_o christian_n reject_v i_o ask_v she_o if_o i_o will_v run_v the_o risque_n of_o these_o danger_n by_o go_v among_o the_o jew_n since_o according_a to_o her_o say_n they_o be_v more_o dispose_v to_o receive_v the_o truth_n she_o say_v yes_o sir_n there_o be_v hazard_n there_o as_o well_o as_o elsewhere_o because_o the_o devil_n have_v those_o who_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o he_o in_o every_o place_n in_o every_o state_n in_o every_o sect_n and_o under_o every_o law_n for_o he_o have_v run_v to_o and_o fro_o through_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v devour_v many_o as_o well_o among_o the_o jew_n as_o among_o other_o but_o i_o except_o the_o good_a among_o the_o jew_n and_o i_o know_v certain_o that_o these_o be_v more_o dispose_v to_o receive_v the_o truth_n than_o any_o other_o because_o they_o sin_n through_o ignorance_n for_o they_o never_o know_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o do_v not_o yet_o know_v it_o for_o they_o look_v for_o this_o son_n of_o god_n in_o glory_n and_o know_v not_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o same_o who_o come_v already_o among_o they_o in_o dishonour_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o shall_v discover_v this_o truth_n 39_o they_o shall_v return_v from_o their_o exile_n and_o re-enter_v into_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o abraham_n and_o shall_v return_v to_o be_v god_n people_n in_o exclusion_n of_o the_o christian_n who_o have_v abuse_v so_o many_o privilege_n 23._o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o the_o jew_n settle_v again_o on_o their_o ruin_n i_o ask_v she_o wherefore_o the_o christian_n can_v not_o be_v reform_v that_o they_o may_v become_v the_o people_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o the_o jew_n convert_v to_o take_v away_o their_o crown_n she_o say_v sir_n the_o jew_n be_v much_o more_o dispose_v to_o receive_v the_o truth_n than_o the_o christian_n be_v for_o these_o sin_n out_o of_o pure_a malicé_n and_o have_v forsake_v god_n and_o his_o law_n this_o 31._o the_o jew_n have_v not_o do_v they_o do_v yet_o fear_v and_o know_v god_n and_o the_o christian_n do_v neither_o for_o they_o preach_v public_o that_o to_o obtain_v the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o love_n god_n that_o to_o save_v we_o from_o go_v to_o hell_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o have_v self-love_n that_o this_o fear_n of_o their_o damnation_n be_v capable_a of_o procure_v they_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o salvation_n and_o they_o utter_v a_o thousand_o other_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n in_o every_o thing_n this_o they_o can_v do_v through_o ignorance_n because_o beside_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v as_o well_o as_o the_o jew_n they_o have_v moreover_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v leave_v they_o in_o write_v for_o a_o everlasting_a memorial_n which_o all_o christian_n ought_v still_o to_o follow_v the_o christian_n have_v receive_v faith_n to_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n where_o he_o suffer_v pain_n labour_n poverty_n and_o contempt_n be_v persecute_v imprison_a scourge_v buffet_v and_o at_o last_o put_v to_o death_n on_o a_o cross_n as_o a_o malefactor_n and_o all_o this_o to_o give_v a_o example_n 24._o to_o christian_n that_o by_o follow_v his_o step_n they_o may_v enter_v into_o his_o glory_n they_o do_v believe_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o also_o that_o the_o same_o son_n of_o god_n be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n with_o a_o great_a many_o other_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n nevertheless_o against_o their_o belief_n they_o live_v direct_o contrary_a to_o what_o jesus_n christ_n teach_v they_o and_o what_o they_o believe_v by_o the_o command_n of_o god_n if_o the_o jew_n believe_v this_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o will_v mourn_v for_o the_o sin_n which_o they_o commit_v against_o he_o and_o will_v follow_v his_o example_n which_o 14._o shall_v very_o short_o come_v to_o pass_v whereas_o the_o christian_n shall_v die_v obstinate_a in_o their_o sin_n without_o repentance_n by_o which_o you_o may_v judge_v sir_n that_o the_o jew_n be_v much_o more_o dispose_v to_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v communicate_v to_o they_o than_o the_o christian_n who_o oppose_v the_o know_a truth_n they_o know_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o they_o show_v he_o less_o respect_n than_o a_o servant_n will_v do_v to_o the_o mean_a master_n and_o eat_v and_o swallow_v he_o as_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n how_o will_v you_o have_v these_o person_n to_o be_v reform_v since_o they_o will_v reform_v all_o the_o world_n look_v on_o themselves_o as_o god_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o child_n of_o the_o true_a god_n while_o they_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o devil_n this_o they_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v choose_v rather_o to_o perish_v in_o their_o darkness_n than_o to_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o truth_n whereas_o those_o jew_n will_v glad_o hear_v what_o will_v enlighten_v they_o and_o will_v be_v better_v by_o know_v the_o truth_n for_o many_o good_a spirit_n among_o they_o aspire_v after_o it_o 25._o hunger_a and_o thirst_v after_o righteousness_n which_o when_o they_o see_v and_o know_v they_o will_v immediate_o embrace_v it_o because_o nothing_o but_o ignorance_n hinder_v they_o from_o resign_v themselves_o whole_o to_o god_n whereas_o the_o christian_n through_o pure_a obstinacy_n in_o their_o sin_n will_v not_o do_v it_o so_o that_o if_o i_o shall_v go_v to_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n at_o rome_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o i_o come_v from_o god_n to_o advertise_v they_o that_o they_o be_v not_o true_a christian_n and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n teach_v another_o way_n of_o live_v than_o what_o they_o observe_v and_o that_o to_o be_v save_v we_o must_v of_o necessity_n follow_v jesus_n they_o will_v present_o seize_v on_o i_o as_o a_o criminal_a and_o put_v i_o to_o death_n if_o i_o will_v not_o retract_v my_o word_n though_o they_o know_v well_o enough_o they_o be_v true_a even_o though_o they_o shall_v evident_o perceive_v that_o i_o have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n they_o will_v oppose_v this_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v maintain_v their_o error_n how_o then_o sir_n will_v you_o have_v such_o person_n to_o be_v convert_v god_n will_v never_o force_v any_o body_n have_v give_v to_o all_o man_n their_o freewill_n to_o use_v it_o according_a as_o they_o please_v if_o these_o christian_n will_v acknowledge_v no_o other_o god_n but_o their_o own_o authority_n they_o will_v deal_v hardly_o with_o god_n himself_o if_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o speak_v against_o it_o how_o can_v god_n in_o justice_n reform_v these_o christian_n who_o
time_n be_v come_v to_o put_v this_o sentence_n in_o execution_n it_o will_v begin_v 8._o with_o the_o plague_n of_o war_n and_o then_o that_o of_o pestilence_n and_o after_o of_o famine_n that_o there_o may_v be_v time_n give_v to_o all_o man_n of_o good_a will_n to_o repent_v and_o to_o take_v these_o plague_n in_o penitence_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o by_o these_o suffering_n to_o find_v a_o way_n to_o return_v to_o god_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o to_o rise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o sin_n to_o grace_n as_o the_o jew_n shall_v do_v by_o be_v convert_v first_o of_o all_o that_o the_o lord_n may_v find_v 6._o they_o watch_v at_o his_o come_v and_o may_v say_v to_o they_o 21._o well_o do_v good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n because_o thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a in_o a_o few_o thing_n i_o will_v set_v thou_o over_o great_a thing_n enter_v into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n which_o joy_n shall_v be_v recover_v at_o the_o come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o glory_n who_o will_v overthrow_v 7._o all_o evil_a by_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_v which_o shall_v be_v see_v and_o understand_v by_o all_o the_o man_n who_o shall_v then_o be_v remain_v on_o the_o earth_n thus_o it_o be_v that_o god_n order_v these_o last_o thing_n 20._o with_o weight_n and_o measure_n that_o he_o may_v still_o exercise_v his_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n wait_v still_o for_o sinner_n to_o repentance_n be_v desirous_a 11._o that_o they_o shall_v be_v convert_v and_o live_v whatever_o man_n say_v god_n will_v never_o depart_v from_o his_o eternal_a quality_n and_o will_v not_o confound_v his_o last_o work_n no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v his_o first_o for_o he_o continue_v still_o firm_a and_o constant_a in_o all_o his_o work_n if_o man_n will_v not_o know_v this_o it_o be_v their_o own_o fault_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o stray_n of_o their_o mind_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v time_n to_o open_v their_o eye_n for_o the_o plague_n be_v begin_v i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o the_o jew_n be_v wilful_o obstinate_a not_o to_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n which_o the_o christian_n do_v believe_v assure_o and_o consequent_o they_o be_v near_a to_o be_v convert_v than_o the_o jew_n she_o say_v sir_n the_o jew_n be_v less_o obstinate_a than_o the_o christian_n because_o there_o be_v more_o ground_n for_o their_o unbelief_n than_o for_o that_o of_o the_o christian_n who_o reject_v the_o come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o glory_n though_o it_o be_v verify_v by_o all_o the_o holy_a prophet_n the_o apostle_n and_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o who_o in_o so_o many_o divers_a place_n declare_v his_o glorious_a come_v and_o very_o few_o speak_v of_o his_o come_v in_o reproach_n this_o make_v the_o jew_n doubtful_a know_v that_o god_n never_o surprise_v any_o but_o often_o foretell_v the_o thing_n that_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o they_o find_v so_o frequent_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o prophecy_n of_o his_o come_v in_o glory_n and_o so_o seldom_o his_o come_v in_o reproach_n they_o have_v some_o fundamental_a reason_n for_o which_o they_o can_v believe_v his_o come_v in_o reproach_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o truth_n shall_v come_v to_o enlighten_v they_o they_o will_v yield_v to_o it_o because_o they_o love_v it_o whereas_o the_o christian_n do_v formal_o resist_v it_o and_o wilful_o impugn_v it_o and_o will_v not_o believe_v what_o they_o read_v so_o often_o nor_o hearken_v to_o the_o light_n that_o be_v offer_v they_o thereupon_o be_v desirous_a to_o continue_v obstinate_o in_o the_o persuasion_n in_o which_o they_o have_v be_v train_v and_o blind_o to_o believe_v the_o sentiment_n of_o man_n prefer_v they_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n so_o that_o the_o jew_n will_v soon_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n than_o the_o christian_n will_v believe_v that_o the_o same_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v to_o reign_v in_o glory_n upon_o earth_n though_o this_o come_v be_v much_o more_o to_o be_v desire_v and_o value_v than_o that_o come_v in_o suffering_n and_o reproach_n for_o he_o who_o high_o esteem_v god_n will_v be_v trouble_v to_o believe_v or_o see_v he_o shall_v be_v abase_v or_o despise_v and_o become_v the_o reproach_n of_o man_n he_o who_o deserve_v all_o honour_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n hereby_o the_o jew_n have_v more_o humane_a ground_n not_o to_o believe_v the_o come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o suffering_n than_o the_o christian_n have_v not_o to_o believe_v his_o come_v in_o glory_n which_o be_v more_o honourable_a pleasant_a and_o desirable_a though_o the_o jew_n as_o well_o as_o the_o christian_n do_v very_o ill_o not_o to_o believe_v both_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v equal_o true_a both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o she_o seem_v to_o hold_v the_o jew_n part_v more_o than_o the_o christian_n she_o say_v pardon_v i_o sir_n i_o be_o not_o partial_a and_o if_o i_o be_v i_o will_v rather_o take_v the_o christian_n part_n among_o who_o i_o be_o bear_v than_o that_o of_o the_o jew_n who_o i_o never_o see_v i_o hold_v only_o the_o part_n of_o truth_n without_o lean_v to_o any_o side_n because_o i_o have_v no_o pretension_n upon_o earth_n neither_o jew_n nor_o christian_n will_v give_v i_o any_o thing_n but_o god_n will_v judge_v i_o in_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n therefore_o i_o will_v always_o observe_v it_o without_o respect_n to_o any_o body_n if_o i_o know_v not_o that_o the_o jew_n be_v more_o dispose_v to_o receive_v the_o truth_n than_o the_o christian_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v to_o their_o advantage_n but_o i_o can_v conceal_v the_o truth_n when_o it_o be_v ask_v i_o if_o you_o address_v these_o jew_n you_o will_v find_v my_o say_v true_a for_o i_o know_v nothing_o of_o myself_o all_o come_v from_o a_o source_n from_o whence_o no_o lie_n can_v be_v draw_v i_o be_o not_o incline_v for_o the_o jew_n nor_o for_o any_o other_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n for_o i_o know_v none_o of_o they_o that_o be_v well_o please_v to_o god_n but_o i_o love_v those_o best_a that_o be_v most_o dispose_v to_o receive_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o be_v convert_v unto_o god_n and_o i_o remark_n this_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v more_o dispose_v for_o this_o than_o any_o other_o which_o in_o trust_n i_o declare_v to_o you_o not_o that_o i_o may_v be_v love_v or_o despise_v but_o that_o i_o may_v simple_o declare_v the_o truth_n as_o i_o know_v it_o make_v a_o trial_n of_o it_o sir_n and_o of_o all_o the_o other_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o you_o will_v find_v they_o in_o their_o time_n all_o true_a for_o i_o be_o not_o for_o tell_v thing_n that_o be_v extravagant_a or_o without_o necessity_n you_o will_v have_v need_n after_o this_o to_o know_v all_o that_o i_o have_v declare_v unto_o you_o they_o will_v be_v very_o profitable_a for_o you_o and_o for_o those_o who_o you_o shall_v judge_v capable_a of_o receive_v they_o doubt_v nothing_o of_o they_o conceive_v and_o digest_v they_o all_o you_o shall_v receive_v from_o they_o great_a light_n in_o your_o understanding_n and_o strength_n and_o nourishment_n to_o your_o soul_n and_o you_o shall_v still_o enter_v far_o into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o yourself_o which_o shall_v be_v a_o everlasting_a happiness_n for_o you_o beware_v of_o be_v tempt_v to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a because_o the_o devil_n will_v surprise_v you_o with_o false_a appearance_n under_o a_o pretext_n of_o scrupulous_a piety_n and_o justice_n the_o eighteen_o conference_n how_o the_o holy_a spirit_n give_v his_o light_n to_o the_o soul_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o i_o will_v not_o doubt_v of_o her_o word_n because_o i_o believe_v that_o they_o all_o come_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n she_o say_v soft_o sir_n all_o my_o word_n come_v not_o from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o he_o do_v not_o dictate_v to_o i_o all_o the_o word_n that_o i_o must_v pronounce_v but_o the_o substance_n of_o all_o that_o i_o say_v because_o i_o will_v never_o speak_v otherwise_o than_o by_o his_o motion_n and_o no_o other_o discourse_n be_v necessary_a for_o i_o for_o i_o have_v no_o desire_n to_o please_v any_o and_o all_o that_o make_v not_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n seem_v to_o i_o a_o superfluous_a and_o useless_a thing_n therefore_o i_o do_v not_o willing_o utter_v any_o discourse_n but_o these_o to_o which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n move_v i_o but_o he_o do_v not_o dictate_v to_o i_o all_o my_o word_n i_o have_v need_n to_o express_v myself_o by_o humane_a reason_n or_o comparison_n because_o otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o understand_v i_o for_o
be_v to_o cast_v rose_n before_o swine_n offer_v they_o only_o to_o those_o who_o will_v take_v pleasure_n to_o smell_v they_o and_o not_o to_o these_o who_o will_v cast_v they_o into_o the_o dunghill_n all_o good_a man_n will_v feel_v in_o the_o bottom_n of_o their_o soul_n that_o this_o can_v come_v from_o the_o devil_n for_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o lie_n and_o never_o incite_v to_o self-denial_n because_o he_o be_v too_o proud_a nor_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n because_o he_o hate_v he_o and_o yet_o less_o to_o resign_v our_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n for_o he_o catch_v all_o man_n by_o their_o selfwill_a all_o my_o discourse_n have_v for_o their_o scope_n all_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v never_o contrary_a to_o himself_o the_o ninteenth_n conference_n show_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n hinder_v man_n from_o discover_v the_o save_a truth_n and_o that_o the_o heathen_n be_v more_o resign_v to_o god_n than_o the_o christian_n at_o present_a i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o i_o think_v no_o body_n in_o the_o world_n can_v resist_v so_o clear_a truth_n without_o betray_v his_o own_o conscience_n that_o all_o the_o thing_n she_o have_v tell_v i_o do_v speak_v forth_o themselves_o and_o be_v attend_v with_o such_o solid_a foundation_n and_o such_o firm_a reason_n that_o the_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a may_v comprehend_v they_o and_o that_o the_o scope_n of_o all_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o they_o that_o savour_v of_o the_o earth_n she_o say_v if_o we_o be_v not_o fall_v into_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n no_o body_n can_v resist_v so_o clear_a truth_n all_o the_o world_n will_v feel_v they_o and_o will_v discover_v his_o deceit_n every_o one_o will_v fly_v to_o the_o desert_n to_o do_v penitence_n bewail_v his_o past_a life_n and_o the_o error_n wherein_o he_o have_v live_v for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n but_o the_o michief_n be_v that_o this_o antichrist_n have_v so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o adherent_n who_o take_v up_o his_o quarrel_n and_o resist_v the_o truth_n that_o the_o good_a themselves_o have_v difficulty_n to_o receive_v it_o for_o they_o disfigure_v it_o and_o make_v it_o pass_v for_o lie_n and_o heresy_n tell_v those_o who_o advance_v it_o that_o they_o will_v seduce_v the_o people_n 2._o as_o they_o say_v of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o bring_v light_a into_o the_o world_n call_v he_o a_o seducer_n 63._o of_o the_o people_n or_o 48._o one_o that_o have_v a_o devil_n the_o power_n of_o darkness_n be_v much_o increase_v since_o the_o time_n that_o he_o be_v upon_o earth_n and_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v look_v for_o but_o 25._o outrage_n from_o all_o the_o devil_n adherent_n in_o this_o case_n a_o man_n must_v count_v it_o a_o happiness_n to_o suffer_v 11._o persecution_n for_o righteousness_n sake_n and_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v 13._o no_o more_o bless_a death_n than_o to_o die_v a_o martyr_n for_o the_o truth_n but_o he_o must_v beware_v of_o man_n 17._o and_o use_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o rather_o part_v with_o his_o skin_n than_o lose_v his_o soul_n you_o will_v find_v more_o welcome_a sir_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o heathen_n than_o among_o the_o catholic_n who_o condemn_v other_o to_o authorize_v their_o own_o custom_n despise_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o say_v 1._o judge_v not_o and_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v condemn_v not_o and_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v these_o catholic_n condemn_v all_o those_o who_o do_v not_o follow_v they_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v first_o to_o be_v root_v out_o they_o condemn_v so_o many_o holy_a heathen_n who_o will_v go_v before_o they_o 12._o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n because_o they_o be_v faithful_a to_o god_n though_o they_o have_v not_o any_o law_n or_o institution_n to_o know_v he_o nevertheless_o many_o resign_v their_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n and_o obey_v the_o truth_n in_o their_o life_n whereas_o these_o christian_n follow_v lie_n of_o which_o the_o devil_n 44._o be_v the_o father_n and_o none_o of_o they_o will_v resign_v themselves_o to_o god_n nor_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o discover_v the_o shortness_n of_o this_o miserable_a life_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o one_o that_o shall_v be_v eternal_a these_o heathen_n know_v a_o god_n to_o who_o they_o resign_v themselves_o and_o see_v the_o misery_n of_o this_o life_n they_o bewail_v it_o they_o laugh_v when_o they_o consider_v the_o stupidity_n of_o man_n who_o take_v pleasure_n in_o this_o life_n and_o judge_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v call_v man_n because_o they_o do_v not_o use_v their_o reason_n to_o discover_v the_o truth_n of_o thing_n for_o he_o who_o go_v through_o the_o city_n of_o athens_n with_o his_o lantern_n seek_v for_o a_o man_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o so_o many_o thousand_o as_o be_v in_o the_o marketplace_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o they_o who_o be_v about_o he_o be_v all_o man_n but_o see_v they_o be_v all_o occupy_v in_o buy_v and_o sell_v and_o trade_n for_o the_o earth_n he_o can_v not_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v reasonable_a man_n because_o he_o who_o have_v reason_n aught_o to_o use_v it_o for_o his_o eternal_a happiness_n else_o he_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o beast_n for_o reason_n only_o make_v a_o man_n without_o which_o he_o do_v not_o differ_v from_o the_o brute_n beast_n for_o they_o be_v unreasonable_a animal_n and_o man_n be_v reasonable_a one_o lay_v aside_o which_o they_o be_v as_o much_o brute_n as_o the_o beast_n this_o make_v the_o philosopher_n search_v for_o a_o man_n among_o so_o great_a a_o number_n and_o can_v not_o find_v one_o because_o all_o spend_v their_o life_n in_o worldly_a business_n instead_o of_o employ_v they_o in_o the_o study_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o same_o god_n and_o they_o condemn_v those_o heathen_n as_o damn_v and_o for_o my_o part_n i_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o saint_n and_o believe_v 11._o they_o will_v come_v to_o reign_v with_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o earth_n to_o condemn_v the_o christian_n who_o beside_o the_o light_n of_o the_o heathen_n have_v law_n and_o commandment_n from_o god_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o oblige_v they_o to_o a_o far_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o the_o immortality_n of_o their_o soul_n the_o shortness_n and_o misery_n of_o this_o life_n that_o they_o may_v despise_v it_o and_o the_o vanity_n of_o perish_v good_n that_o they_o may_v abandon_v they_o nevertheless_o not_o one_o of_o these_o christian_n do_v any_o of_o these_o thing_n i_o ask_v she_o if_o it_o be_v indeed_o possible_a that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o christian_n shall_v be_v resign_v to_o god_n nor_o have_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o heathen_n she_o say_v yes_o sir_n this_o be_v most_o true_a that_o 16._o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o christian_n be_v resign_v to_o god_n nor_o understand_v true_a virtue_n as_o much_o as_o the_o heathen_n do_v because_o none_o apply_v themselves_o to_o it_o since_o they_o become_v idolater_n of_o man_n they_o have_v leave_v off_o to_o know_v god_n and_o abandon_v themselves_o to_o the_o will_n of_o their_o idol_n instead_o of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o preach_v and_o teach_v through_o all_o christendom_n that_o we_o must_v depend_v upon_o man_n who_o they_o call_v the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v and_o follow_v they_o even_o with_o a_o blind_a obedience_n in_o which_o they_o prefer_v themselves_o to_o god_n who_o demand_v only_o of_o man_n that_o he_o obey_v he_o in_o what_o he_o shall_v make_v know_v to_o he_o have_v give_v he_o eye_n to_o discover_v this_o beautiful_a universe_n 20._o that_o when_o he_o see_v the_o heaven_n the_o earth_n the_o sun_n the_o star_n and_o all_o the_o element_n with_o so_o many_o different_a creature_n so_o marvellous_a and_o so_o well_o order_v he_o may_v clear_o perceive_v that_o all_o those_o thing_n must_v proceed_v from_o a_o god_n since_o man_n and_o nature_n can_v make_v nothing_o like_o they_o moreover_o when_o man_n consider_v himself_o he_o discover_v evident_o by_o his_o understanding_n that_o his_o soul_n his_o memory_n his_o understanding_n can_v come_v but_o from_o a_o god_n for_o no_o such_o thing_n can_v come_v from_o nature_n no_o more_o than_o his_o body_n since_o all_o the_o industry_n of_o man_n be_v not_o capable_a to_o make_v so_o much_o as_o one_o hair_n of_o our_o head_n this_o oblige_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v a_o god_n by_o so_o many_o different_a operation_n without_o be_v put_v to_o know_v god_n blind_o no_o more_o than_o to_o love_n
confound_v the_o wisdom_n and_o the_o learning_n of_o the_o world_n that_o they_o may_v strive_v rather_o to_o be_v well_o please_v to_o god_n than_o man_n that_o flee_v all_o earthly_a love_n which_o prove_v bitterness_n in_o the_o end_n they_o may_v give_v their_o heart_n whole_o to_o he_o who_o be_v altogether_o lovely_a who_o love_n be_v unchangeable_a who_o will_v not_o disappoint_v they_o but_o will_v reward_v their_o love_n with_o infinite_a light_n and_o joy_n and_o love_n that_o they_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n may_v beware_v of_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a and_o of_o vouch_v god_n spirit_n for_o all_o their_o dream_n and_o imagination_n for_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n reside_v there_o his_o fruit_n be_v and_o the_o soul_n that_o possess_v he_o have_v its_o affection_n whole_o remove_v from_o temporal_a and_o earthly_a thing_n and_o set_v upon_o those_o which_o be_v spiritual_a and_o eternal_a that_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n may_v see_v at_o who_o door_n the_o gild_n of_o the_o universal_a evil_n of_o christendom_n be_v like_o most_o to_o be_v lay_v that_o they_o may_v fear_v and_o tremble_v when_o they_o hear_v that_o salt_n which_o have_v lose_v its_o savour_n be_v good_a for_o nothing_o but_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o and_o tread_v under_o foot_n of_o man_n that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o themselves_o may_v be_v teach_v true_a humility_n self-denial_n and_o a_o contempt_n of_o all_o earthly_a thing_n without_o which_o spirit_n they_o be_v no_o more_o capable_a of_o teach_v other_o however_o they_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n than_o a_o ape_n can_v make_v a_o good_a picture_n though_o he_o take_v up_o and_o use_v the_o painter_n pencil_n and_o colour_n in_o one_o word_n that_o all_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o deny_v themselves_o and_o to_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o true_a love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o one_o another_o and_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v now_o abroad_o upon_o the_o earth_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o world_n may_v learn_v righteousness_n for_o a_o further_a vindication_n of_o these_o write_n and_o the_o sentiment_n contain_v in_o they_o i_o shall_v here_o subjoin_v the_o protestation_n make_v by_o p._n p._n after_o his_o have_v answer_v the_o calumny_n and_o reproach_n which_o some_o have_v publish_v against_o they_o in_o the_o v._o sect._n of_o la_fw-fr paix_fw-fr des_fw-fr bonnes_fw-fr ames_n pag._n 278_o 279_o 280._o but_o say_v he_o if_o all_o that_o say_v do_v not_o satisfy_v i_o will_v make_v and_o do_v at_o present_a make_v this_o protestation_n before_o god_n and_o before_o all_o man_n that_o be_v that_o m._n b._n her_o friend_n and_o i_o never_o have_v have_v not_o yet_o and_o shall_v never_o have_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n other_o sentiment_n or_o design_n than_o to_o believe_v and_o live_v as_o true_a christian_n profess_v by_o word_n and_o deed_n all_o that_o be_v fundamental_a in_o true_a christianity_n and_o which_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n that_o we_o receive_v the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n as_o divine_a and_o infallible_a and_o reject_v all_o that_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o that_o we_o believe_v and_o adore_v the_o adorable_a and_o incomprehensible_a trinity_n the_o father_n the_o word_n or_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n god_n three_o and_o one_o eternaly_a bless_a the_o inward_a distinction_n of_o which_o by_o what_o name_n soever_o they_o be_v call_v real_a relative_n hipostatical_a personal_n substantial_a be_v as_o true_a as_o they_o be_v true_o incomprehensible_a by_o the_o mind_n of_o man._n that_o we_o hold_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v true_a eternal_a god_n and_o true_a man_n to_o be_v the_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o mediator_n beetween_n god_n and_o man_n who_o by_o his_o merit_n by_o his_o satisfaction_n by_o his_o righteousness_n by_o his_o life_n and_o by_o his_o death_n be_v the_o author_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o those_o who_o imitate_v he_o or_o to_o speak_v with_o the_o apostle_n to_o all_o those_o who_o obey_v he_o that_o we_o ascribe_v the_o glory_n of_o all_o good_a pure_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o all_o evil_a pure_o to_o the_o fault_n of_o man_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n that_o we_o make_v the_o essence_n and_o perfection_n of_o true_a christianity_n to_o consist_v in_o self-denial_n in_o continual_a prayer_n in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o in_o the_o imitation_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o we_o consider_v all_o other_o speculation_n as_o accessary_n for_o which_o it_o be_v good_a not_o to_o condemn_v any_o body_n but_o to_o leave_v every_o one_o at_o liberty_n to_o embrace_v or_o lay_v they_o aside_o as_o they_o find_v they_o helpful_a for_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o essential_a part_n that_o the_o true_a key_n whereby_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n be_v humility_n and_o prayer_n and_o not_o the_o force_a speculation_n of_o human_a reason_n that_o all_o state_n the_o ecclesiastical_a the_o political_a the_o oeconomical_a be_v establish_v by_o god_n and_o that_o the_o honour_n and_o submission_n which_o be_v measure_v out_o to_o they_o and_o regulate_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v respective_o due_a to_o they_o that_o when_o evil_a be_v reprove_v this_o do_v not_o concern_v those_o state_n direct_o nor_o good_a man_n in_o they_o who_o be_v free_a of_o it_o but_o only_o the_o abuse_n and_o the_o ill_a behaviour_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o if_o in_o the_o write_n of_o m._n b._n or_o of_o her_o friend_n there_o be_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v obscure_a or_o that_o seem_v contrary_a to_o what_o have_v be_v say_v we_o offer_v to_o clear_v and_o reconcile_v it_o or_o to_o disavow_v it_o in_o case_n it_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v that_o it_o can_v be_v well_o explain_v and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o mistake_n of_o word_n we_o protest_v against_o all_o that_o may_v be_v cite_v from_o her_o write_n or_o object_v by_o way_n of_o consequence_n against_o what_o i_o have_v say_v as_o against_o so_o many_o shameful_a mangling_n malicious_a interpretation_n deceitful_a calumny_n injurious_a consequence_n in_o which_o god_n will_v do_v we_o justice_n if_o man_n be_v not_o just_a to_o we_o i_o protest_v also_o against_o all_o those_o who_o offer_v to_o pass_v hard_a censure_n upon_o what_o concern_v m._n b._n her_o friend_n or_o myself_o without_o have_v read_v the_o principal_a of_o her_o write_n or_o my_o system_fw-la as_o against_o unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a judge_n at_o least_o as_o against_o person_n very_o inconsiderate_a and_o unworthy_a of_o credit_n in_o short_a i_o believe_v i_o have_v reason_n to_o require_v that_o they_o who_o shall_v be_v convince_v to_o have_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n a_o hundred_o falsehood_n and_o other_o who_o shall_v believe_v they_o without_o reason_n may_v not_o again_o be_v admit_v the_o one_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o accuser_n and_o the_o other_o in_o that_o of_o judge_n but_o reject_v the_o one_o as_o notorious_a impostor_n and_o the_o other_o as_o wilful_o stupid_a a_o admonition_n to_o the_o reader_n dear_a reader_n since_o it_o be_v my_o earnest_a desire_n that_o the_o perusal_n of_o this_o divine_a work_n of_o which_o this_o be_v the_o first_o part_n may_v be_v profitable_a and_o advantageous_a to_o you_o i_o can_v forbear_v wish_v that_o you_o may_v give_v no_o place_n in_o your_o mind_n to_o certain_a prejudices_fw-la with_o which_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o world_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o miserable_o delude_v that_o they_o will_v believe_v themselves_o deceive_v if_o they_o do_v not_o follow_v they_o permit_v i_o to_o speak_v to_o you_o a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o some_o of_o those_o pernicious_a and_o deceitful_a prejudices_fw-la which_o you_o must_v either_o banish_v out_o of_o your_o mind_n or_o forbear_v the_o read_n of_o this_o book_n as_o you_o will_v not_o bring_v upon_o you_o your_o own_o condemnation_n by_o retain_v those_o thing_n which_o may_v cause_v you_o to_o make_v a_o ill_a use_n of_o it_o in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o advise_v you_o not_o to_o regard_v the_o appearance_n state_n or_o quality_n of_o person_n nor_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v pure_o external_a and_o so_o consequent_o can_v neither_o add_v nor_o subtract_v from_o the_o truth_n which_o have_v no_o dependence_n on_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n let_v the_o speaker_n be_v a_o man_n or_o a_o woman_n let_v instruction_n come_v from_o this_o or_o that_o place_n let_v the_o person_n who_o be_v reprove_v be_v great_a or_o small_a turk_n or_o christian_n many_o or_o few_o you_o must_v not_o be_v surprise_v at_o any_o of_o these_o circumstance_n truth_n and_o falsehood_n may_v
great_a desire_n of_o virtue_n and_o a_o absolute_a resolution_n of_o embrace_v a_o evangelical_n life_n have_v discover_v sufficient_o by_o her_o discourse_n that_o without_o this_o no_o body_n will_v be_v save_v her_o word_n have_v so_o enlighten_v my_o understanding_n that_o all_o the_o learning_n i_o have_v acquire_v seem_v to_o i_o as_o darkness_n and_o ignorance_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o divine_a wisdom_n which_o be_v so_o merciful_o pour_v out_o upon_o the_o earth_n by_o the_o organ_n of_o a_o silly_a maid_n i_o wish_v that_o every_o one_o have_v see_v she_o and_o hear_v she_o as_o i_o have_v do_v and_o may_v receive_v thereby_o the_o same_o operation_n which_o my_o soul_n have_v feel_v for_o i_o look_v upon_o her_o acquaintance_n as_o a_o great_a favour_n than_o all_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n which_o god_n have_v bestow_v on_o i_o in_o this_o world_n yea_o even_o than_o my_o creation_n itself_o for_o that_o will_v serve_v i_o in_o little_a stead_n without_o the_o work_n out_o of_o my_o salvation_n which_o will_v have_v be_v in_o great_a danger_n if_o i_o have_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o myself_o and_o of_o the_o design_n and_o marvel_n of_o god_n which_o i_o have_v learned_a and_o discover_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o this_o creature_n and_o she_o have_v certain_o be_v send_v i_o as_o the_o only_a mean_n of_o the_o perfection_n of_o my_o soul_n and_o of_o all_o those_o who_o will_v profit_v by_o the_o recital_n of_o this_o narrative_a which_o i_o find_v myself_o oblige_v to_o publish_v for_o the_o profit_n of_o many_o this_o be_v the_o true_a treasure_n hide_v in_o the_o earth_n he_o who_o shall_v find_v it_o aught_o to_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v to_o buy_v this_o ground_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v discover_v and_o find_v this_o treasure_n and_o take_v it_o up_o with_o joy_n as_o the_o most_o precious_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n i_o can_v hinder_v some_o who_o wish_v evil_a or_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n from_o find_v or_o pretend_v something_o that_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o they_o for_o the_o light_n do_v always_o offend_v blear-eye_n who_o can_v endure_v the_o light_n and_o the_o truth_n which_o reprove_v be_v never_o agreeable_a to_o our_o sense_n but_o i_o will_v admonish_v they_o to_o beware_v of_o reprehend_v or_o make_v themselves_o master_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n i_o behove_v for_o some_o time_n to_o suspend_v my_o judgement_n as_o to_o the_o belief_n of_o some_o point_n of_o doctrine_n for_o i_o have_v learn_v they_o from_o my_o master_n in_o another_o sense_n but_o since_o i_o have_v lay_v aside_o all_o these_o author_n who_o have_v write_v we_o their_o sentiment_n and_o fix_v on_o the_o sacred_a text_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o have_v find_v so_o much_o conformity_n in_o they_o with_o the_o life_n manner_n and_o word_n of_o this_o pilgrimess_n that_o no_o doubt_n can_v come_v any_o long_o into_o my_o mind_n and_o i_o can_v not_o without_o betray_v my_o conscience_n give_v she_o so_o much_o as_o one_o contradiction_n since_o that_o give_v i_o a_o infallible_a proof_n that_o this_o soul_n be_v true_o possess_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o have_v bring_v forth_o in_o she_o his_o twelve_o fruit_n his_o seven_o gift_n and_o the_o eight_o beatitude_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v teach_v i_o shall_v believe_v i_o commit_v a_o great_a sin_n to_o think_v that_o any_o other_o thing_n may_v proceed_v from_o such_o a_o source_n than_o what_o be_v divine_a so_o much_o the_o rather_o that_o i_o have_v always_o remark_v that_o this_o soul_n do_v act_n in_o nothing_o natural_o but_o by_o supernatural_a motive_n never_o be_v move_v but_o by_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o confirmation_n of_o which_o i_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o spend_v the_o last_o drop_n of_o my_o blood_n to_o the_o end_n that_o none_o may_v reject_v this_o light_n to_o love_v rather_o their_o darkness_n as_o jesus_n christ_n have_v foretell_v that_o many_o will_v do_v but_o that_o every_o one_o may_v embrace_v it_o for_o salvation_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v altogether_o enjoy_v the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v here_o so_o particular_o treat_v of_o with_o eternal_a joy_n and_o contentment_n which_o be_v earnest_o wish_v you_o by_o friendly_a reader_n your_o most_o affectionate_a in_o jesus_n christ_n christian_n de_fw-fr cort_n superior_a of_o the_o oratory_n and_o pastor_n of_o st._n john_n at_o mechlin_n at_o mechlin_n the_o 10_o of_o august_n 1667._o m._n a._n b.'s_n confession_n of_o faith_n which_o she_o present_v at_o the_o court_n of_o gottorp_n to_o oppose_v the_o calumny_n which_o the_o churchman_n have_v spread_v that_o they_o may_v raise_v suspicion_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o her_o faith_n i._o i_o be_o a_o christian_n and_o i_o believe_v all_o that_o a_o true_a christian_n ought_v to_o believe_v ii_o i_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n iii_o i_o believe_v the_o twelve_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o the_o apostle_n symbol_n and_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v of_o any_o one_o article_n thereof_o iv._o i_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_a god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v also_o true_a man_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n v._o i_o believe_v in_o the_o gospel_n the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o i_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o all_o the_o point_n of_o this_o belief_n which_o i_o protest_v before_o god_n and_o man_n to_o all_o those_o who_o it_o shall_v concern_v in_o testimony_n whereof_o i_o have_v sign_v this_o my_o true_a confession_n with_o my_o hand_n and_o seal_v it_o with_o my_o seal_n at_o sleeswick_n the_o 11_o of_o march_n 1675._o anthoniette_n bourignon_fw-fr l._n s._n a_o catalogue_n of_o the_o book_n write_v by_o m._n a._n b._n bear_v at_o l'isle_n in_o flanders_n 1._o the_o life_n of_o m._n antonia_n bourignon_fw-fr 2._o god_n call_v and_o man_n refusal_n in_o 2_o part_n 3._o light_a arisen_a in_o darkness_n in_o 4_o part_n 4._o the_o grave_a of_o false_a theology_n drive_v out_o by_o the_o true_a come_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o 4_o part_n 5._o a_o advertisement_n against_o the_o quaker_n 6._o a_o treatise_n of_o solid_a virtue_n in_o 2_o part_n 7._o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n in_o 3_o part_n 8._o the_o academy_n of_o learned_a divine_n in_o 3_o part_n 9_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o 2_o part_n 10._o innocence_n manifest_v and_o truth_n discover_v 11._o the_o touchstone_z 12._o the_o blindness_n of_o man_n now_o in_o 2_o part_n 13._o antichrist_n discover_v in_o 3_o part_n 14._o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n 15._o the_o holy_a perspective_n 16._o the_o last_o mercy_n of_o god_n 17._o the_o renew_n of_o the_o gospel_n spirit_n in_o 3_o part_n 18._o the_o stone_n of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n 19_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o just_a 20._o the_o morning_n star_n 21._o the_o confusion_n of_o the_o builder_n of_o babel_n 22._o save_v instruction_n and_o advice_n the_o most_o part_n of_o these_o work_n be_v translate_v from_o the_o french_a into_o the_o dutch_a and_o high_a dutch_a the_o first_o part_n of_o solid_a virtue_n the_o touchstone_n and_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o gospel_n spirit_n be_v also_o in_o latin_n a_o table_n of_o the_o conference_n of_o this_o first_o part_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o first_o dialogue_n or_o conference_n of_o god_n deal_v with_o a._n b._n particular_o how_o he_o immediate_o instruct_v she_o from_o her_o infancy_n the_o opposition_n of_o men._n of_o christian_a perfection_n and_o of_o the_o deplorable_a state_n of_o christian_n pag._n 1._o the_o second_o conference_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n of_o the_o last_o time_n and_o of_o the_o man_n of_o the_o last_o time_n 17._o the_o three_o conference_n the_o method_n by_o which_o christianity_n have_v begin_v to_o decay_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v continue_v so_o to_o do_v to_o such_o a_o degree_n that_o at_o present_a there_o be_v no_o more_o true_a christian_n upon_o earth_n to_o wit_n 1._o the_o admission_n of_o false_a brethren_n 2._o appropriation_n 3._o debate_n 4._o partiality_n 5._o scholar_n 6._o dispute_n 7._o the_o victory_n of_o the_o devil_n 23._o the_o four_o conference_n of_o the_o quality_n and_o manner_n of_o act_v which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n to_o uphold_v it_o in_o its_o good_a estate_n against_o all_o enemy_n and_o not_o give_v way_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n as_o they_o
most_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o regard_v often_o what_o do_v most_o delight_n our_o sense_n or_o rather_o what_o be_v most_o 21._o for_o our_o advantage_n and_o thus_o we_o render_v our_o love_n vain_a or_o please_v the_o vanity_n of_o those_o who_o love_v we_o for_o this_o cause_n i_o have_v find_v it_o more_o sure_a to_o avoid_v all_o person_n who_o will_v love_v i_o nature_n do_v often_o flatter_v we_o in_o this_o point_n persuade_v we_o that_o we_o love_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o person_n 17._o when_o we_o love_v only_o the_o body_n and_o its_o endowment_n or_o our_o own_o 6._o delectation_n and_o advantage_n and_o have_v ask_v she_o why_o she_o will_v not_o stay_v in_o one_o fix_v place_n since_o she_o be_v out_o of_o her_o own_o country_n and_o why_o she_o will_v not_o be_v know_v she_o answer_v though_o i_o be_o a_o stranger_n yet_o i_o may_v be_v take_v notice_n of_o by_o stay_v long_o in_o one_o place_n which_o i_o do_v not_o desire_v for_o man_n be_v full_a 8._o of_o vain_a curiosity_n they_o will_v hinder_v my_o inward_a repose_n and_o quiet_a without_o any_o profit_n therefore_o i_o love_v rather_o to_o travel_v and_o continue_v unknown_a for_o man_n can_v give_v i_o any_o thing_n nor_o i_o they_o and_o have_v reply_v unto_o she_o that_o man_n may_v instruct_v she_o in_o 10._o 9_o the_o matter_n of_o perfection_n or_o that_o she_o herself_o may_v also_o instruct_v some_o other_o she_o answer_v 27_o i_o never_o learn_v any_o thing_n from_o any_o man_n and_o as_o to_o the_o teach_n of_o they_o they_o have_v too_o much_o presumption_n 34._o of_o their_o own_o knowledge_n to_o hearken_v to_o a_o child_n as_o i_o be_o i_o choose_v rather_o to_o leave_v they_o in_o their_o ignorance_n 9_o than_o to_o speak_v to_o they_o to_o be_v pursue_v and_o persecute_v by_o they_o i_o ask_v she_o if_o she_o be_v not_o afraid_a of_o be_v want_v in_o charity_n to_o her_o neighbour_n while_o she_o will_v not_o teach_v they_o or_o believe_v that_o they_o will_v persecute_v she_o in_o well-doing_n she_o say_v sir_n if_o i_o have_v not_o make_v the_o experiment_n i_o dare_v not_o say_v so_o but_o believe_v i_o i_o have_v search_v in_o diverse_a place_n for_o person_n who_o be_v esteem_v good_a man_n to_o declare_v my_o sentiment_n to_o they_o and_o to_o manifest_v the_o blindness_n that_o be_v now_o in_o christendom_n and_o 10._o i_o have_v not_o find_v any_o body_n who_o have_v follow_v my_o say_n on_o the_o contrary_a some_o have_v reproach_v and_o persecute_v i_o so_o that_o i_o have_v be_v constrain_v to_o withdraw_v out_o of_o their_o reach_n 39_o for_o they_o will_v have_v treat_v i_o hardly_o and_o even_o imprison_v i_o because_o i_o tell_v they_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o will_v not_o learn_v because_o it_o reprove_v they_o 25._o they_o oppose_v themselves_o and_o be_v alarm_v against_o this_o truth_n more_o than_o against_o the_o devil_n himself_o at_o this_o time_n it_o be_v put_v out_o of_o credit_n 3._o those_o who_o possess_v it_o be_v oblige_v to_o hold_v their_o peace_n and_o to_o conceal_v themselves_o i_o have_v experience_v this_o in_o divers_a country_n where_o i_o have_v every_o where_o meet_v with_o this_o opposition_n by_o which_o i_o sufficient_o perceive_v that_o the_o 2._o darkness_n be_v universal_a through_o all_o the_o world_n i_o can_v be_v want_v in_o charity_n in_o this_o point_n for_o i_o have_v often_o expose_v 13._o my_o life_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o my_o neighbour_n and_o i_o will_v do_v it_o yet_o if_o i_o find_v 16._o matter_n dispose_v which_o fail_v i_o be_o resolve_v to_o continue_v alone_o 3._o though_o with_o regret_n see_v all_o the_o world_n perish_v while_o they_o will_v have_v no_o help_n and_o will_v not_o know_v their_o blindness_n i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v reckon_v with_o i_o 6._o as_o be_v want_v on_o my_o part_n to_o my_o neighbour_n in_o what_o be_v in_o my_o power_n 9_o i_o ask_v she_o from_o whence_o she_o derive_v her_o sentiment_n and_o what_o book_n she_o make_v use_v of_o for_o her_o spiritual_a read_n she_o say_v she_o have_v never_o take_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o book_n that_o she_o make_v no_o use_n of_o they_o nor_o carry_v any_o with_o she_o on_o the_o way_n but_o a_o small_a one_o in_o which_o be_v write_v the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o she_o carry_v instead_o of_o a_o box_n of_o relic_n not_o to_o read_v it_o but_o out_o of_o devotion_n esteem_v those_o word_n more_o than_o all_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o for_o her_o sentiment_n that_o they_o come_v to_o she_o without_o her_o know_v 3._o how_o that_o in_o her_o childhood_n she_o have_v be_v instruct_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o that_o come_n after_o ward_n to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n she_o find_v herself_o 17._o replenish_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o entertain_v her_o spirit_n with_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o 2_o first_o christian_n these_o thought_n inflame_v she_o with_o a_o desire_n of_o imitate_v and_o follow_v they_o therefore_o she_o say_v to_o her_o parent_n and_o friend_n 1._o let_v we_o go_v into_o the_o conntry_n where_o the_o christiaus_n live_v who_o jesus_n christ_n have_v teach_v and_o when_o they_o answer_v she_o here_o be_v the_o land_n of_o the_o christian_n jesus_n christ_n have_v teach_v we_o she_o think_v within_o herself_o that_o this_o 4._o can_v not_o be_v true_a that_o the_o life_n which_o she_o and_o all_o other_o person_n lead_v be_v not_o conformable_a to_o the_o 9_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o to_o that_o of_o the_o first_o christian_n she_o always_o ask_v again_o where_o be_v the_o land_n of_o the_o christian_n till_o every_o one_o deride_v she_o 7._o as_o if_o she_o have_v be_v a_o fool_n assure_v she_o that_o she_o live_v in_o the_o land_n of_o christian_n and_o that_o they_o have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o she_o can_v not_o comprehend_v say_v i_o see_v here_o coffer_n full_a of_o silver_n costly_a furniture_n and_o sine_fw-la house_n whereas_o jesus_n christ_n be_v poor_a and_o 7._o bear_v in_o a_o stable_a how_o can_v we_o be_v christian_n i_o can_v believe_v this_o at_o last_o she_o resolve_v not_o to_o speak_v 9_o any_o more_o of_o it_o think_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n how_o she_o may_v find_v the_o way_n and_o the_o opportunity_n of_o come_v one_o day_n into_o the_o land_n of_o christian_n while_o she_o consider_v all_o the_o action_n and_o deportment_n of_o man_n she_o find_v they_o always_o more_o contrary_a to_o her_o sentiment_n which_o make_v she_o often_o weep_v 136._o when_o she_o be_v alone_o and_o she_o make_v her_o complaint_n to_o 16._o jesus_n christ_n and_o ask_v he_o 5._o how_o she_o may_v live_v as_o a_o christian_a and_o be_v his_o spouse_n it_o seem_v say_v she_o sir_n that_o god_n have_v pity_n on_o my_o tender_a tear_n for_o a_o little_a after_o i_o receive_v a_o secret_a advertisement_n 7._o as_o if_o some_o one_o have_v speak_v 3._o within_o i_o and_o answer_v my_o demand_n this_o give_v i_o so_o much_o consolation_n that_o 16._o childish_a play_n and_o pleasure_n be_v no_o more_o agreeable_a to_o i_o i_o can_v find_v no_o other_o contentment_n but_o in_o entertain_v myself_o with_o these_o secret_a 174._o thought_n that_o teach_v i_o all_o the_o sentiment_n i_o still_o retain_v not_o but_o though_o through_o my_o wickedness_n i_o lose_v this_o conversation_n for_o a_o time_n 6._o when_o incline_v to_o follow_v the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o give_v myself_o to_o the_o vanity_n of_o youth_n earthly_a sentiment_n begin_v to_o possess_v my_o spirit_n but_o the_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n have_v since_o recall_v i_o and_o 13._o restore_v the_o same_o inward_a delight_n with_o more_o solidity_n and_o light_n i_o never_o acquire_v science_n any_o other_o way_n than_o by_o recollection_n 8._o i_o have_v no_o need_n either_o of_o book_n 100_o or_o master_n to_o teach_v i_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o will_v be_v a_o great_a hindrance_n to_o i_o 20._o if_o i_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o they_o even_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n 9_o if_o visible_a will_v hinder_v i_o this_o i_o can_v hardly_o understand_v say_v to_o she_o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n will_v be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o you_o how_o dare_v we_o speak_v to_o you_o any_o more_o to_o hinder_v you_o she_o say_v do_v not_o mistake_v i_o sir_n i_o mean_v that_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n can_v teach_v i_o no_o more_o than_o i_o learn_v by_o ●7_n my_o inward_a conversation_n therefore_o he_o will_v be_v unprofitable_a to_o i_o but_o you_o can_v hinder_v i_o so_o long_o as_o you_o profit_n by_o my_o word_n my_o charity_n
of_o god_n and_o that_o of_o man_n 15._o i_o have_v be_v often_o deceive_v myself_o by_o these_o seem_a virtue_n be_v persuade_v that_o there_o be_v yet_o many_o true_a christian_n but_o have_v see_v they_o try_v by_o tribulation_n and_o contempt_n they_o be_v consume_v as_o the_o chaff_n in_o the_o fire_n and_o if_o they_o have_v be_v gold_n in_o charity_n persecution_n will_v have_v render_v they_o more_o bright_a many_o soul_n will_v be_v deceive_v at_o death_n who_o in_o their_o life_n time_n presume_v they_o be_v true_a christian_n while_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n they_o will_v be_v worse_o than_o heathen_n such_o be_v the_o blindness_n wherein_o we_o live_v at_o present_a in_o which_o no_o body_n make_v a_o right_a judgement_n of_o himself_o or_o of_o other_o every_o one_o presume_v to_o be_v save_v without_o good_a work_n whereas_o no_o work_n can_v be_v good_a 1●4_n if_o they_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o 2._o charity_n which_o be_v at_o present_a banish_v from_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n for_o which_o cause_n there_o be_v no_o more_o perfect_a christian_n upon_o earth_n for_o the_o christian_a life_n be_v all_o charity_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v no_o long_o in_o use_n i_o ask_v she_o how_o long_o she_o believe_v it_o be_v since_o there_o be_v no_o more_o charity_n nor_o true_a christian_n upon_o earth_n she_o answer_v there_o have_v be_v no_o long_a charity_n upon_o earth_n sir_n since_o christian_n leave_v the_o gospel_n simplicity_n from_o that_o time_n charity_n begin_v to_o wax_v cold_a and_o when_o the_o church_n will_v ●eeds_o establish_v herself_o in_o pomp_n riches_n and_o magnificence_n this_o outward_a splendour_n have_v utter_o destroy_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n study_n have_v banish_v the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o the_o learning_n of_o man_n have_v stifle_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n so_o that_o the_o evil_n have_v always_o increase_v till_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n 3-9_a they_o have_v annul_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o extinguish_a charity_n which_o be_v no_o long_o know_v and_o much_o less_o practise_v in_o our_o dangerous_a and_o woeful_a time_n the_o danger_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o be_v fear_v the_o less_o it_o be_v know_v because_o no_o body_n apprehend_v those_o truth_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v reveal_v they_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n sound_v their_o salvation_n upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o learned_a who_o be_v far_o estrange_v 20._o from_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o which_o even_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v themselves_o they_o lean_v so_o much_o upon_o their_o own_o judgement_n these_o be_v blind_a 14._o who_o lead_v the_o blind_a and_o both_o together_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o ditch_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o with_o just_a reason_n have_v call_v these_o last_o time_n dangerous_a 1._o because_o under_o a_o pretext_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n man_n be_v lead_v to_o damnation_n simple_a people_n believe_v that_o they_o hear_v god_n when_o they_o hear_v those_o guide_n who_o do_v very_o often_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n for_o if_o you_o observe_v what_o question_n and_o dispute_n be_v now_o form_v in_o the_o church_n you_o will_v find_v that_o they_o make_v debate_n of_o thing_n which_o humane_a malice_n can_v not_o raise_v they_o must_v needs_o have_v come_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o hell_n they_o maintain_v that_o it_o be_v almost_o lawful_a to_o commit_v all_o sort_n of_o sin_n without_o offend_a god_n that_o one_o may_v swear_v false_o without_o sin_v and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n which_o you_o may_v better_o know_v than_o i_o for_o i_o be_o strike_v with_o so_o much_o horror_n when_o i_o hear_v such_o thing_n that_o i_o be_v never_o desirous_a to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o these_o black_a villainy_n they_o be_v grow_v to_o such_o a_o height_n that_o they_o maintain_v no_o body_n be_v oblige_v to_o love_n god_n which_o overturn_v 38._o the_o first_o and_o the_o great_a commandment_n and_o be_v repugnant_a to_o nature_n itself_o which_o carry_v in_o it_o this_o obligation_n of_o love_v a_o god_n of_o who_o it_o hold_v its_o be_v and_o all_o thing_n do_v you_o not_o think_v sir_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v of_o antichrist_n since_o it_o contradict_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o commandment_n which_o god_n give_v to_o man_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o all_o time_n and_o all_o age_n nevertheless_o they_o preach_v this_o public_o with_o many_o other_o abomination_n and_o many_o believe_v that_o these_o be_v truth_n because_o they_o be_v advance_v by_o learned_a person_n and_o such_o as_o be_v place_v in_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n and_o dignity_n who_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n pardon_v i_o sir_n that_o i_o digress_v from_o the_o answer_n which_o i_o shall_v have_v make_v to_o your_o demand_n it_o be_v because_o a_o sensible_a regret_n transport_v i_o and_o make_v i_o exceed_v when_o i_o think_v upon_o the_o reason_n why_o there_o be_v no_o more_o true_a christian_n the_o three_o conference_n the_o mean_n by_o which_o christianity_n begin_v to_o decay_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o have_v continue_v so_o to_o do_v to_o such_o a_o degree_n that_o at_o present_a there_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n upon_o earth_n viz._n 1._o the_o admission_n of_o false_a brethren_n 2._o appropriation_n 3._o debate_n 4._o partiality_n 5._o man_n of_o learning_n 6._o dispute_n 7._o the_o victory_n of_o the_o devil_n i_o reply_v to_o she_o that_o she_o can_v not_o offend_v i_o in_o this_o on_o the_o contrary_a i_o be_v very_o curious_a to_o understand_v more_o clear_o the_o cause_n and_o reason_n why_o there_o be_v no_o long_o any_o true_a christian_n on_o earth_n she_o say_v sir_n let_v we_o sit_v down_o here_o i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o particular_a account_n of_o the_o original_n progress_n and_o end_n of_o this_o calamity_n assoon_o as_o the_o first_o christian_n begin_v to_o grow_v remiss_a the_o devil_n like_o a_o strange_a shepherd_n slip_v into_o the_o sheep_n tell_v of_o j._n christ_n where_o he_o lead_v astray_o many_o of_o his_o sheep_n who_o by_o little_a and_o little_o forsake_v their_o true_a shepherd_n turn_v away_o from_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n to_o follow_v iniquity_n and_o lie_v the_o evangelical_n poverty_n be_v contemn_v by_o they_o suffering_n be_v become_v insupportable_a to_o they_o humility_n be_v disdain_v in_o fine_a they_o will_v no_o long_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o lawful_a shepherd_n who_o word_n serve_v for_o the_o nourishment_n of_o their_o soul_n from_o that_o time_n antichrist_n begin_v his_o reign_n and_o have_v ever_o since_o augment_v his_o power_n he_o can_v not_o endure_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v bring_v the_o word_n unto_o man_n by_o follow_v of_o which_o they_o may_v be_v to_o all_o eternity_n in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o bless_a from_o which_o he_o have_v be_v chase_v and_o banish_v for_o all_o eternity_n therefore_o he_o endeavour_v to_o make_v war_n against_o this_o word_n that_o he_o may_v efface_v it_o out_o of_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n and_o may_v thereby_o hinder_v their_o come_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o do_v not_o tempt_v they_o by_o evil_a deed_n or_o by_o wicked_a action_n but_o by_o trick_n and_o slight_n cover_v his_o malice_n under_o the_o cloak_n of_o piety_n and_o reason_n first_o he_o incite_v the_o wicked_a his_o adherent_n to_o listen_v themselves_o into_o the_o christian_a life_n 24._o that_o tare_n may_v be_v sow_v among_o the_o good_a grain_n he_o thrust_v in_o 13._o many_o false_a brethren_n among_o the_o true_a that_o he_o may_v by_o they_o do_v his_o work_n covert_o and_o under_o a_o pretext_n of_o piety_n for_o otherwise_o he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v able_a to_o gain_v any_o thing_n upon_o the_o heart_n of_o those_o first_o christian_n who_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o burn_v with_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n he_o can_v not_o have_v catch_v they_o with_o evil_a thing_n or_o such_o as_o have_v a_o appearance_n of_o evil_n he_o multiple_n therefore_o first_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n so_o exceed_o that_o every_o one_o judge_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o live_v any_o more_o in_o common_a he_o move_v by_o humane_a reason_n the_o heart_n of_o the_o most_o perfect_a to_o yield_v to_o a_o separation_n and_o to_o consent_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v possess_v his_o own_o particular_a wealth_n without_o forget_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n charity_n which_o every_o one_o shall_v preserve_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o supply_v the_o necessity_n of_o their_o brethren_n thus_o this_o old_a serpent_n have_v always_o colour_v his_o invention_n with_o piety_n
and_o reason_n but_o no_o soon_o do_v every_o one_o begin_v to_o have_v thou_o and_o i_o than_o the_o brother_n be_v forget_v 4_o and_o instead_o of_o bring_v their_o portion_n in_o common_a each_o one_o begin_v to_o cheat_v as_o to_o his_o own_o particular_a from_o hence_o come_v a_o exclusion_n and_o exception_n of_o person_n and_o instead_o of_o invite_v to_o their_o table_n the_o poor_a 13_o as_o j._n christ_n have_v teach_v that_o they_o may_v have_v their_o reward_n in_o heaven_n they_o invite_v their_o friend_n and_o those_o who_o have_v the_o conveniency_n to_o invite_v they_o again_o by_o which_o charity_n be_v great_o diminish_v and_o avarice_n begin_v to_o gain_v upon_o their_o heart_n every_o one_o seek_v their_o own_o interest_n assoon_o as_o the_o devil_n have_v this_o door_n open_a whereby_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n of_o j._n christ_n he_o begin_v to_o stir_v up_o therein_o debate_v 1-8_a and_o dissension_n which_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o peace_n which_o j._n christ_n have_v always_o teach_v say_v 22._o i_o give_v you_o my_o peace_n my_o peace_n i_o leave_v you_o and_o elsewhere_o 35_o love_v one_o another_o by_o this_o shall_v it_o be_v know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n the_o devil_n also_o stifle_v these_o doctrine_n from_o the_o beginning_n for_o one_o say_v 12._o i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o another_o i_o be_o of_o apollo_n thus_o vice_n increase_v and_o charity_n be_v lessen_v behold_v from_o what_o time_n begin_v no_o long_o true_a christian_n to_o be_v find_v in_o process_n of_o time_n yet_o less_o and_o in_o the_o end_n which_o be_v now_o there_o be_v none_o this_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o deduce_v to_o you_o in_o particular_a you_o may_v sir_n conceive_v the_o rest_n sufficient_o i_o tell_v she_o that_o my_o conception_n can_v not_o reach_v so_o far_o that_o she_o must_v declare_v to_o i_o the_o whole_a so_o much_o the_o rather_o that_o she_o have_v promise_v to_o do_v it_o that_o it_o be_v neither_o good_a nor_o honest_a to_o be_v want_v to_o her_o promise_n since_o i_o will_v willing_o hear_v it_o and_o the_o affair_n do_v require_v it_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o my_o own_o particular_a salvation_n be_v concern_v in_o it_o she_o say_v see_v it_o be_v so_o sir_n i_o will_v proceed_v but_o be_v not_o you_o weary_a if_o the_o discourse_n be_v long_o many_o thing_n can_v be_v say_v in_o a_o little_a time_n be_v you_o as_o attentive_a to_o hear_v as_o i_o shall_v be_v to_o declare_v it_o these_o be_v excellent_a truth_n which_o will_v open_v your_o understanding_n and_o that_o of_o all_o person_n capable_a of_o reason_n when_o therefore_o those_o first_o christian_n become_v thus_o remiss_a and_o the_o devil_n have_v make_v a_o breach_n upon_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o most_o part_n to_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o j._n christ_n some_o of_o those_o who_o be_v not_o yet_o altogether_o pervert_v set_v themselves_o to_o make_v some_o reformation_n in_o the_o church_n lest_o it_o shall_v become_v more_o corrupt_a for_o many_o error_n and_o sect_n have_v creep_v into_o it_o every_o one_o desire_v to_o believe_v and_o practise_v after_o his_o own_o mode_n this_o give_v beginning_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o heresy_n for_o as_o long_o as_o the_o union_n of_o true_a christian_n do_v last_o 32._o all_o be_v but_o one_o heart_n and_o one_o will_v in_o j._n christ_n live_v all_o under_o the_o gospel_n simplicity_n but_o when_o once_o they_o assemble_v learned_a man_n and_o introduce_v school_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v but_o dispute_n and_o controversy_n the_o science_n have_v bring_v in_o so_o many_o question_n little_a necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o it_o have_v be_v more_o desirable_a they_o have_v never_o be_v introduce_v for_o instead_o of_o put_v a_o end_n to_o error_n they_o have_v rather_o raise_v new_a one_o how_o many_o heresy_n have_v proceed_v from_o the_o learned_a of_o the_o church_n a_o calvin_n a_o luther_n in_o our_o time_n and_o so_o many_o other_o before_o true_o sir_n in_o think_v to_o reform_v the_o church_n by_o the_o learned_a they_o have_v rather_o deform_v it_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n require_v rather_o humility_n of_o heart_n than_o great_a philosophy_n for_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v in_o it_o more_o true_a wisdom_n 130._o than_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o world_n can_v acquire_v in_o all_o the_o school_n of_o the_o university_n the_o learning_n of_o man_n have_v stifle_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o since_o they_o have_v choose_v the_o learned_a unto_o the_o helm_n of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v thrust_v the_o saint_n from_o it_o see_v none_o have_v since_o that_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o government_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o great_a man_n and_o the_o learned_a the_o little_a one_o 5._o to_o who_o jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o give_v his_o grace_n have_v be_v reject_v and_o render_v useless_a hereby_o in_o process_n of_o time_n there_o have_v be_v so_o few_o true_a christian_n the_o number_n of_o which_o have_v always_o diminish_v according_a as_o the_o learning_n of_o man_n have_v multiply_v for_o if_o those_o learned_a man_n have_v observe_v and_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n simple_o as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v the_o church_n have_v continue_v in_o the_o flower_n of_o its_o youth_n but_o since_o they_o will_v needs_o polish_v and_o varnish_v it_o with_o humane_a doctrine_n they_o have_v quite_o disfigure_v it_o it_o be_v beautiful_a countenance_n have_v no_o need_n of_o ornament_n nothing_o can_v amend_v the_o work_n of_o god_n but_o may_v indeed_o spoil_v it_o as_o they_o have_v do_v by_o so_o many_o various_a and_o unprofitable_a question_n as_o concern_v grace_n freewill_n the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o so_o many_o other_o thing_n little_o necessary_a to_o our_o salvation_n with_o so_o many_o new_a way_n and_o devotion_n to_o be_v save_v so_o many_o case_n about_o sin_n so_o many_o circumstance_n concern_v virtue_n which_o serve_v rather_o to_o hinder_v than_o advance_v they_o it_o be_v better_a to_o study_v not_o to_o sin_v than_o to_o know_v its_o degree_n it_o be_v far_o better_a to_o walk_v suitable_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n than_o to_o study_v to_o know_v how_o he_o give_v it_o to_o we_o and_o to_o have_v virtue_n and_o devotion_n than_o to_o learn_v so_o many_o mean_n to_o attain_v to_o it_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o all_o these_o building_n make_v with_o man_n hand_n have_v shake_v the_o edifice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v build_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o same_o j._n christ_n man_n who_o be_v whole_o ignorant_a will_v needs_o correct_v and_o reform_v the_o work_n of_o god_n which_o be_v so_o perfect_a and_o accomplish_a by_o which_o they_o have_v ruin_v themselves_o and_o all_o like_a unto_o they_o i_o entreat_v that_o she_o will_v explain_v her_o mind_n a_o little_a more_o at_o length_n concern_v this_o question_n and_o tell_v i_o in_o order_n if_o it_o be_v not_o expedient_a to_o oppose_v the_o error_n which_o have_v creep_v in_o amid_o the_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o call_v the_o learned_a that_o they_o may_v overcome_v by_o reason_n and_o argument_n those_o false_a brethren_n who_o set_v themselves_o direct_o to_o oppose_v that_o doctrine_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v stifle_v and_o blast_v it_o even_o in_o its_o cradle_n she_o answer_v true_o sir_n it_o have_v be_v much_o better_a to_o have_v oppose_v those_o error_n by_o despise_v they_o than_o by_o dispute_v against_o they_o because_o these_o dispute_n have_v teach_v many_o the_o error_n which_o they_o will_v have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o who_o may_v have_v continue_v in_o their_o evangelical_a simplicity_n whereas_o these_o dispute_n have_v make_v many_o grow_v remiss_a by_o the_o same_o error_n which_o be_v spread_v have_v captivate_v weak_a mind_n it_o have_v be_v far_o better_a to_o have_v reject_v and_o cut_v off_o those_o erroneous_a person_n than_o to_o maintain_v their_o opinion_n by_o dispute_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o fear_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n will_v have_v be_v sink_v by_o all_o the_o error_n that_o can_v be_v raise_v up_o against_o it_o see_v its_o author_n have_v promise_v 18_o that_o it_o shall_v never_o perish_v however_o it_o be_v oppose_v and_o attack_v which_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n for_o though_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o adherent_n have_v always_o endeavour_v to_o obscure_v and_o defile_v this_o holy_a doctrine_n yet_o it_o have_v continue_v in_o write_v pure_a and_o entire_a in_o our_o hand_n to_o this_o day_n and_o will_v continue_v so_o even_o to_o the_o
but_o i_o make_v very_o small_a reckon_n of_o this_o visible_a and_o bodily_a antichrist_n because_o he_o can_v seduce_v none_o but_o those_o who_o desire_v to_o be_v so_o he_o shall_v be_v know_v for_o a_o wicked_a one_o because_o he_o will_v deal_v harsh_o with_o those_o who_o yield_v obedience_n to_o he_o which_o will_v occasion_v martyr_n and_o make_v many_o good_a man_n to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o resistance_n they_o will_v make_v against_o he_o these_o evil_n be_v not_o terrible_a but_o to_o the_o fainthearted_a who_o be_v not_o train_v up_o to_o suffering_n but_o i_o reckon_v this_o invisible_a and_o spiritual_a antichrist_n of_o who_o i_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o to_o be_v far_o more_o pernicious_a because_o he_o seduce_v the_o well-meaning_a under_o the_o appearance_n of_o a_o false_a good_a this_o be_v much_o more_o to_o be_v fear_v the_o evil_n which_o be_v manifest_a be_v easy_a to_o be_v avoid_v by_o those_o who_o hate_v it_o but_o the_o evil_n which_o be_v cover_v with_o piety_n and_o holiness_n be_v insensible_o follow_v by_o those_o who_o be_v good_a and_o love_v piety_n who_o will_v never_o follow_v antichrist_n discover_v nor_o the_o evil_n which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v such_o i_o tell_v she_o that_o i_o have_v never_o hear_v of_o this_o spiritual_a antichrist_n that_o i_o will_v willing_o know_v who_o he_o be_v and_o what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o he_o who_o be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o he_o who_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n from_o its_o beginning_n she_o answer_v sir_n this_o antichrist_n be_v the_o devil_n who_o from_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n make_v war_n against_o man_n that_o he_o may_v make_v they_o forsake_v god_n and_o their_o own_o salvation_n for_o these_o end_n he_o make_v eve_n and_o adam_n fall_v into_o sin_n he_o tempt_v cain_n to_o kill_v his_o brother_n abel_n and_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o the_o other_o evil_n and_o sin_n which_o have_v since_o come_v upon_o the_o earth_n this_o devil_n have_v always_o lead_v man_n to_o do_v evil_a from_o this_o he_o be_v call_v 2._o the_o old_a serpent_n because_o he_o have_v shed_v his_o infernal_a venom_n upon_o the_o earth_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n but_o since_o he_o know_v that_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o have_v send_v his_o son_n to_o instruct_v and_o save_v it_o he_o have_v redouble_v his_o rage_n against_o man_n and_o by_o new_a subtlety_n have_v endeavour_v to_o hinder_v their_o salvation_n that_o with_o himself_o he_o may_v draw_v they_o into_o his_o own_o miserable_a wretched_a condemnation_n but_o perceive_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v send_v to_o they_o from_o heaven_n not_o by_o voice_n thunder_n or_o burn_a bush_n but_o by_o a_o sensible_a and_o visible_a body_n which_o the_o same_o god_n have_v take_v for_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v teach_v they_o palpable_o by_o a_o organ_n like_v to_o their_o humane_a nature_n the_o devil_n perceive_v that_o he_o can_v not_o any_o long_o have_v such_o hold_v of_o man_n because_o of_o the_o virtue_n of_o that_o word_n which_o be_v able_a to_o create_v the_o universe_n he_o devise_v to_o appear_v like_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o ape_n endeavour_v to_o imitate_v his_o action_n cover_v himself_o with_o sheep_n skin_n though_o he_o be_v the_o true_a ravenous_a wolf_n he_o slip_v from_o the_o very_a beginning_n into_o the_o church_n which_o jesus_n christ_n be_v go_v to_o build_v that_o he_o may_v oppose_v and_o contradict_v his_o word_n under_o pious_a pretext_n and_o cover_v his_o malice_n with_o hypocrisy_n that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o contradict_v and_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o have_v true_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n and_o there_o never_o will_v be_v any_o other_o antichrist_n but_o this_o same_o devil_n who_o be_v former_o call_v the_o old_a serpent_n there_o be_v no_o distinction_n between_o he_o who_o slip_v into_o the_o church_n in_o its_o beginning_n and_o he_o who_o shall_v be_v incarnate_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o it_o be_v always_o the_o same_o devil_n who_o only_o take_v different_a method_n that_o he_o may_v the_o better_a decoy_n man_n according_a to_o the_o various_a occurrence_n of_o time_n he_o begin_v his_o reign_n from_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o have_v always_o gradual_o advance_v it_o by_o continue_v still_o to_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n till_o he_o have_v efface_v it_o out_o of_o the_o memory_n almost_o of_o all_o man_n which_o we_o may_v perceive_v in_o this_o age_n wherein_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v no_o more_o in_o use_n than_o if_o it_o have_v never_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n which_o make_v i_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v now_o bear_v since_o he_o have_v full_a dominion_n over_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n who_o instead_o of_o persevere_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v insensible_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o devil_n and_o of_o christian_n be_v become_v antichristian_n for_o who_o do_v not_o see_v at_o present_a that_o war_n discord_n and_o dissension_n reign_n among_o christian_n instead_o of_o the_o peace_n 27._o which_o jesus_n christ_n establish_v it_o may_v indeed_o be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o long_a one_o stone_n leave_v upon_o another_o of_o the_o true_a temple_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o long_a two_o christian_a soul_n unite_v in_o the_o same_o heart_n and_o the_o same_o will_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o instead_o of_o that_o 34._o communion_n of_o good_n which_o jesus_n christ_n bring_v into_o his_o church_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v in_o it_o but_o self-interest_n and_o self-seeking_a without_o any_o care_n for_o our_o neighbour_n as_o for_o the_o 35._o mutual_a charity_n of_o love_v our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o it_o be_v so_o despise_v that_o he_o who_o shall_v put_v it_o in_o practice_n will_v be_v scoff_v at_o by_o all_o christian_n much_o more_o he_o who_o shall_v choose_v 10_o the_o last_o place_n or_o who_o shall_v take_v less_o 26_o when_o he_o may_v have_v more_o to_o ●●_o give_v to_o he_o who_o will_v take_v from_o we_o or_o indeed_o 39_o to_o hold_v up_o the_o cheek_n to_o receive_v a_o blow_n will_v be_v reckon_v a_o great_a folly_n among_o the_o christian_n of_o this_o age_n who_o will_v scarce_o suffer_v a_o offensive_a word_n without_o resent_v it_o or_o avenge_a themselves_o who_o be_v there_o 24._o that_o take_v up_o the_o cross_n to_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n since_o every_o one_o avoid_v suffering_n as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v and_o instead_o of_o the_o cross_n take_v all_o contentment_n agreeable_a to_o his_o sense_n as_o far_o as_o they_o be_v lawful_a and_o permit_v and_o so_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n no_o body_n study_v to_o put_v they_o in_o practice_n on_o the_o contrary_a every_o one_o resist_v they_o and_o do_v the_o quite_o contrary_a without_o consider_v that_o all_o that_o be_v against_o christ_n be_v certain_o antichrist_n and_o as_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o salvation_n that_o all_o christian_n shall_v see_v the_o carnal_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o render_v they_o his_o true_a disciple_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o they_o know_v and_o follow_v his_o doctrine_n even_o so_o to_o be_v the_o follower_n of_o the_o devil_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o they_o see_v this_o antichrist_n in_o the_o flesh_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o they_o follow_v his_o doctrine_n which_o be_v much_o more_o hurtful_a to_o soul_n than_o that_o incarnate_a devil_n can_v be_v unto_o body_n therefore_o the_o furious_a be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v dread_v as_o the_o crafty_a and_o conceal_v he_o can_v but_o wound_v or_o kill_v the_o body_n by_o his_o fury_n but_o this_o wound_n and_o kill_v soul_n by_o cheat_n and_o delusion_n i_o can_v not_o but_o acknowledge_v such_o clear_a and_o evident_a truth_n neither_o have_v i_o more_o than_o one_o doubt_n to_o propose_v about_o they_o viz._n whether_o this_o antichrist_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v already_o bear_v which_o be_v suppose_v how_o he_o can_v make_v any_o suffer_v martyrdom_n and_o occasion_n the_o salvation_n of_o many_o of_o those_o who_o shall_v resist_v he_o see_v she_o believe_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v at_o present_a become_v antichristian_a so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v dispose_v for_o martyrdom_n nor_o for_o resist_v of_o he_o who_o they_o love_v and_o follow_v she_o say_v sir_n i_o can_v doubt_v that_o this_o antichrist_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v bear_v already_o for_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o world_n be_v rise_v to_o the_o high_a
quiet_n and_o find_v leisure_n to_o entertain_v myself_o with_o god_n i_o think_v the_o plague_n be_v so_o near_o that_o short_o there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o preacher_n to_o proclaim_v the_o judgement_n for_o the_o plague_n will_v make_v themselves_o be_v feel_v sufficient_o by_o unbeliever_n who_o in_o my_o opinion_n will_v be_v convert_v too_o late_o for_o the_o 19_o pain_n will_v be_v so_o great_a that_o they_o will_v not_o know_v whither_o to_o turn_v they_o for_o fear_n never_o any_o such_o thing_n have_v be_v see_v since_o the_o world_n be_v make_v i_o be_o afraid_a only_o for_o those_o who_o will_v not_o believe_v 39_o because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v convert_v and_o will_v not_o prepare_v for_o suffering_n and_o be_v surprise_v at_o unaware_o will_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o perish_v with_o the_o wicked_a for_o thus_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o universal_a deluge_n though_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v there_o be_v yet_o some_o here_o and_o there_o who_o fear_v god_n nevertheless_o all_o perish_a because_o of_o their_o unbelief_n eight_o person_n only_o do_v escape_v the_o shipwreck_n because_o they_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o noah_n and_o now_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o last_o time_n and_o of_o judgement_n they_o think_v we_o 4._o tell_v they_o fable_n yea_o they_o reject_v they_o as_o untrue_a and_o impertinent_a discourse_n one_o say_v this_o will_v not_o fall_v out_o in_o my_o time_n and_o thus_o they_o thrust_v it_o out_o of_o their_o mind_n this_o have_v often_o trouble_v i_o for_o one_o must_v be_v without_o charity_n who_o be_v not_o grieve_v to_o see_v his_o neighbour_n perish_v while_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v his_o danger_n nor_o will_v he_o have_v help_v i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o the_o evil_n can_v not_o be_v whole_o desperate_a so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v yet_o life_n in_o man_n that_o he_o may_v still_o be_v convert_v that_o he_o have_v always_o god_n for_o his_o father_n who_o abound_v in_o mercy_n entreat_v she_o to_o discover_v these_o truth_n to_o man_n among_o who_o there_o be_v yet_o some_o without_o doubt_n who_o will_v follow_v they_o and_o that_o ignorance_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o damnation_n she_o say_v sir_n if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o infatuation_n of_o mind_n spread_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o will_v yet_o have_v some_o hope_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o some_o soul_n in_o particular_a but_o this_o antichrist_n by_o his_o devilish_a art_n 11._o have_v corrupt_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n especial_o of_o christian_n that_o he_o may_v ●ender_v they_o stupid_a and_o without_o reason_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n this_o stupidity_n can_v be_v humane_a for_o there_o be_v yet_o too_o many_o fine_a wit_n in_o the_o world_n to_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v delude_v by_o false_a persuasion_n that_o we_o be_v christian_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o all_o the_o devotion_n which_o be_v use_v at_o present_a in_o the_o church_n be_v thing_n that_o perfect_v we_o or_o render_v we_o holy_a for_o there_o need_v no_o more_o than_o a_o simple_a human_a reason_n to_o perceive_v that_o there_o be_v no_o holiness_n nor_o righteousness_n nor_o charity_n among_o man_n now_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v never_o so_o many_o church_n in_o the_o world_n so_o many_o mass_n so_o many_o receiving_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o many_o priest_n monk_n religious_a and_o devout_a person_n as_o there_o be_v at_o present_a can_v we_o conclude_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v holy_a be_v withal_o good_a since_o they_o have_v produce_v so_o many_o bad_a effect_n can_v holy_a thing_n work_v wickedness_n in_o man_n as_o we_o see_v and_o feel_v it_o if_o this_o be_v only_o among_o the_o heathen_n jew_n turk_n or_o heretic_n we_o may_v have_v some_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o christian_n have_v receive_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o mean_n of_o their_o christian_a exercise_n and_o the_o common_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o live_v better_a than_o all_o those_o other_o sect_n who_o be_v not_o the_o people_n of_o god_n or_o at_o least_o to_o be_v less_o wicked_a than_o they_o but_o we_o 51._o see_v the_o quite_o contrary_a that_o the_o christian_n now_o adays_o have_v less_o of_o righteousness_n and_o charity_n than_o the_o turk_n themselves_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v blind_v with_o this_o amusement_n that_o they_o be_v christian_n and_o will_v be_v save_v with_o these_o seem_a devotion_n and_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n i●_n the_o devil_n have_v not_o infatuate_v all_o their_o spirit_n it_o will_v be_v impossible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o much_o as_o one_o how_o simple_a soever_o who_o will_v let_v himself_o be_v persuade_v to_o believe_v a_o thing_n contrary_n to_o what_o he_o see_v with_o his_o eye_n feel_v with_o his_o hand_n and_o comprehend_v with_o his_o mind_n this_o be_v notwithstanding_o what_o all_o people_n do_v while_o they_o believe_v they_o be_v christian_n and_o will_v be_v save_v after_o the_o manner_n that_o they_o live_v now_o 17._o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v very_o great_a and_o man_n may_v be_v convert_v so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v yet_o in_o life_n but_o by_o what_o mean_n do_v you_o judge_v sir_n that_o they_o can_v be_v convert_v as_o long_a as_o they_o can_v be_v convince_v that_o this_o outward_a church_n be_v not_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o that_o all_o those_o mean_n of_o salvation_n which_o she_o have_v appoint_v be_v not_o the_o true_a mean_n no_o body_n will_v ever_o be_v convert_v for_o though_o indeed_o their_o heart_n be_v move_v with_o compunction_n and_o repentance_n through_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n judgement_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o return_v to_o true_a faith_n but_o will_v go_v seek_v for_o the_o cure_n of_o their_o soul_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o pious_a exercise_n to_o which_o they_o have_v be_v so_o long_o accustom_a and_o thus_o they_o will_v remain_v in_o the_o same_o state_n in_o which_o they_o be_v former_o without_o ever_o attain_v to_o true_a repentance_n for_o if_o i_o shall_v tell_v they_o the_o truth_n and_o teach_v they_o the_o true_a mean_n of_o recover_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o will_v believe_v that_o i_o design_v to_o seduce_v and_o deceive_v they_o so_o much_o be_v they_o pre-occupyed_a with_o lie_n and_o delusion_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o this_o proceed_v from_o ignorance_n that_o she_o ought_v to_o declare_v in_o particular_a wherein_o true_a faith_n do_v consist_v that_o without_o doubt_v many_o will_v yet_o open_v their_o eye_n and_o will_v embrace_v it_o there_o be_v many_o who_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v damn_v of_o who_o i_o be_v one_o she_o answer_v 8._o there_o be_v no_o long_a faith_n sir_n among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n it_o have_v be_v banish_v from_o they_o since_o man_n place_v their_o faith_n and_o confidence_n upon_o one_o another_o from_o that_o time_n god_n have_v be_v forget_v man_n have_v make_v it_o be_v believe_v that_o they_o will_v save_v one_o another_o though_o these_o saviour_n can_v save_v themselves_o nor_o make_v one_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n nevertheless_o by_o their_o persuasion_n they_o have_v make_v almost_o all_o the_o world_n to_o become_v idolatrous_a every_o one_o have_v forsake_v the_o true_a faith_n to_o follow_v and_o adhere_v to_o these_o man_n place_v in_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n who_o they_o have_v follow_v and_o honour_v as_o god_n believe_v they_o have_v get_v enough_o when_o they_o know_v how_o to_o please_v and_o content_v they_o nature_n take_v its_o content_n thus_o the_o mind_n its_o satisfaction_n in_o one_o word_n the_o true_a invisible_a and_o incomprehensible_a god_n have_v be_v raze_v out_o of_o the_o memory_n by_o these_o false_a one_o visible_a and_o sensible_a to_o our_o nature_n they_o have_v begin_v to_o make_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n broad_a whereas_o jesus_n christ_n make_v it_o narrow_a and_o the_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a church_n they_o have_v render_v humane_a and_o carnal_a and_o thus_o they_o have_v become_v still_o worse_o till_o now_o that_o we_o be_v arrive_v at_o the_o height_n of_o all_o evil._n the_o great_a of_o all_o be_v that_o man_n do_v not_o perceive_v it_o for_o they_o be_v become_v insensible_a through_o so_o long_a a_o custom_n i_o believe_v indeed_o there_o be_v yet_o many_o person_n who_o will_v not_o be_v damn_a but_o what_o mean_n be_v there_o to_o save_v they_o when_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v abandon_v their_o true_a faith_n and_o how_o can_v they_o be_v make_v to_o change_v so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v
say_v that_o they_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o he_o have_v say_v elsewhere_o that_o 10._o neither_o whoremonger_n nor_o drunkard_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n neverthelss_o we_o see_v daily_o such_o person_n receive_v the_o eucharist_n can_v they_o live_v for_o ever_o without_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n there_o will_v be_v a_o great_a contradiction_n in_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o can_v save_v those_o who_o he_o condemn_v nor_o say_v to_o those_o who_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n that_o they_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o 9_o it_o be_v assure_o his_o word_n which_o he_o call_v his_o flesh_n and_o his_o blood_n for_o whosoever_o shall_v eat_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v incorporate_v it_o as_o the_o nourishment_n of_o his_o soul_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o he_o live_v for_o ever_o 51._o for_o this_o word_n give_v life_n eternal_a and_o he_o who_o feed_v upon_o it_o as_o on_o his_o daily_a bread_n can_v never_o die_v this_o be_v the_o tree_n of_o life_n see_v it_o give_v life_n to_o all_o thing_n this_o word_n 3._o have_v create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n of_o nothing_o how_o shall_v it_o not_o give_v life_n unto_o the_o soul_n which_o receive_v it_o and_o if_o it_o have_v the_o force_n to_o translate_v bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o they_o teach_v how_o shall_v it_o not_o change_v our_o soul_n into_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n eternal_a if_o we_o receive_v and_o incorporate_v it_o as_o become_v jesus_n christ_n say_v 21._o these_o be_v my_o mother_n my_o sister_n and_o my_o brethren_n who_o hear_v my_o word_n and_o do_v it_o to_o show_v that_o he_o esteem_v more_o the_o receive_v of_o his_o word_n than_o the_o have_v contribute_v to_o the_o formation_n of_o his_o human_a body_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v more_o happy_a in_o receive_v and_o do_v his_o word_n than_o in_o be_v his_o natural_a mother_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o there_o be_v many_o error_n in_o the_o church_n if_o the_o sense_n that_o she_o propose_v aught_o to_o be_v receive_v that_o it_o be_v very_o clear_a and_o intelligible_a but_o it_o have_v never_o be_v understand_v after_o this_o manner_n she_o say_v bless_a be_v god_n sir_n that_o he_o grant_v yet_o this_o mercy_n to_o the_o world_n to_o send_v his_o light_n amid_o the_o so_o obscure_a darkness_n into_o which_o it_o be_v bring_v at_o present_a all_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v involve_v in_o this_o obscurity_n nothing_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o perfect_a sense_n and_o they_o do_v often_o apply_v sense_n contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n 10._o they_o have_v walk_v as_o grope_v even_o till_o now._n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o they_o fall_v from_o one_o error_n into_o another_o insensible_o it_o be_v a_o great_a happiness_n that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o let_v we_o live_v even_o until_o the_o time_n that_o he_o come_v to_o enlighten_v the_o world_n after_o that_o so_o great_a a_o number_n have_v perish_v through_o ignorance_n we_o have_v no_o more_o deserve_v it_o than_o they_o let_v we_o endeavour_v to_o apply_v it_o right_o unto_o our_o salvation_n without_o let_v the_o occasion_n slip_v which_o be_v now_o so_o free_o offer_v we_o how_o many_o soul_n be_v there_o of_o such_o a_o tender_a conscience_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o reject_v a_o sentiment_n which_o come_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o any_o decree_n of_o its_o college_n fear_v to_o offend_v god_n because_o they_o look_v upon_o it_o and_o take_v it_o for_o the_o holy_a church_n i_o know_v a_o person_n of_o a_o very_a good_a life_n a_o doctor_n of_o theology_n who_o say_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n forbid_v he_o to_o read_v the_o gospel_n he_o dare_v not_o read_v it_o any_o long_o so_o much_o be_v he_o preoccupy_v with_o this_o belief_n that_o rome_n be_v the_o holy_a church_n upon_o this_o supposition_n all_o the_o most_o pious_a do_v follow_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a without_o perceive_v it_o because_o they_o have_v teach_v we_o that_o we_o owe_v a_o blind_a obedience_n as_o if_o we_o be_v permit_v to_o 2._o follow_v evil_a blindfold_a which_o be_v a_o great_a error_n for_o we_o be_v all_o oblige_v to_o discern_v 10._o whether_o what_o we_o follow_v be_v good_a or_o bad_a for_o example_n this_o doctor_n can_v not_o abstain_v from_o read_v of_o the_o gospel_n without_o offend_v god_n high_o though_o the_o pope_n have_v forbid_v he_o to_o read_v it_o because_o this_o prohibition_n be_v contrary_a unto_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v bring_v 33._o his_o word_n from_o heaven_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o life_n and_o the_o nourishment_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o have_v say_v that_o it_o 35._o must_v abide_v in_o we_o for_o ever_o how_o can_v we_o cast_v it_o behind_o we_o because_o a_o pope_n forbid_v it_o who_o can_v destroy_v what_o god_n have_v establish_v nor_o forbid_v what_o he_o have_v command_v without_o be_v antichrist_n for_o all_o that_o be_v against_o christ_n be_v assure_o antichrist_n we_o may_v indeed_o believe_v and_o follow_v what_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n do_v ordain_v we_o when_o they_o be_v thing_n conformable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o law_n though_o this_o be_v teach_v we_o by_o the_o devil_n himself_o we_o can_v not_o do_v ill_o to_o follow_v it_o but_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a ought_v never_o to_o be_v blind_o follow_v god_n have_v make_v we_o reasonable_a creature_n to_o the_o end_v we_o may_v discern_v good_a and_o evil._n all_o the_o blindness_n that_o a_o true_a christian_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v to_o 5._o captivate_v his_o spirit_n under_o the_o incomprehensible_a work_n of_o god_n not_o to_o captivate_v it_o to_o believe_v that_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a be_v good_n a_o man_n must_v have_v lose_v sense_n and_o spirit_n to_o abandon_v himself_o to_o such_o a_o blind_a obedience_n which_o nevertheless_o the_o most_o part_n of_o pious_a christian_n do_v who_o do_v yield_v in_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o his_o council_n if_o this_o mischief_n be_v not_o short_o at_o a_o end_n and_o if_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o discover_v in_o this_o point_n all_o the_o world_n will_v perish_v because_o many_o thing_n will_v be_v determine_v which_o will_v be_v against_o god_n though_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o contradict_v direct_o the_o truth_n because_o no_o man_n can_v ever_o be_v infallible_a how_o holy_a soever_o he_o may_v be_v 70._o s._n peter_n the_o first_o pope_n do_v express_o deny_v his_o master_n and_o do_v real_o err_v 11._o in_o dissemble_v because_o of_o the_o jew_n for_o which_o s._n paul_n reprove_v he_o can_v it_o ever_o be_v say_v without_o blasphemy_n that_o a_o man_n be_v infallible_a sece_v infallibility_n appertain_v to_o god_n alone_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o any_o other_o can_v err_v or_o fail_v in_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o in_o follow_v their_o own_o judgement_n or_o those_o like_o themselves_o they_o may_v fail_v and_o err_v great_o i_o ask_v she_o how_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o god_n shall_v have_v leave_v his_o church_n for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n in_o error_n she_o say_v sir_n god_n have_v not_o leave_v his_o church_n in_o error_n she_o can_v never_o err_v nor_o fail_v for_o she_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o 17._o thing_n with_o god_n as_o the_o bridegroom_n be_v but_o one_o flesh_n with_o his_o spouse_n even_o so_o the_o church_n be_v but_o one_o spirit_n with_o god_n therefore_o she_o can_v never_o be_v leave_v in_o error_n not_o for_o one_o moment_n but_o the_o error_n which_o i_o discover_v to_o you_o sir_n be_v in_o man_n not_o in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o church_n be_v no_o where_o but_o in_o the_o soul_n which_o possess_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v never_o err_v so_o long_o as_o they_o abide_v in_o it_o the_o church_n be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o invisible_a spirit_n which_o render_v itself_o visible_a by_o the_o human_a body_n which_o this_o spirit_n animate_v so_o long_o as_o these_o body_n be_v animate_v and_o possess_v with_o this_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o be_v all_o member_n which_o make_v up_o this_o church_n but_o if_o this_o spirit_n withdraw_v himself_o they_o be_v no_o more_o but_o member_n of_o flesh_n not_o member_n of_o the_o church_n 9_o error_n therefore_o be_v insinuate_v into_o these_o member_n of_o flesh_n not_o into_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o whereas_o these_o member_n of_o flesh_n do_v possess_v former_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o church_n
truth_n will_v strong_o resist_v it_o and_o practise_v unrighteousness_n they_o will_v not_o suffer_v righteousness_n in_o their_o presence_n because_o it_o will_v reprove_v they_o i_o can_v very_o well_o hold_v my_o peace_n as_o i_o have_v do_v for_o so_o many_o year_n bygone_a but_o when_o god_n shall_v will_v that_o i_o speak_v i_o will_v cry_v to_o all_o the_o world_n 28._o without_o fear_v those_o who_o can_v but_o kill_v the_o body_n death_n will_v be_v agreeable_a to_o i_o if_o with_o it_o i_o can_v enlighten_v my_o christian_a brethren_n and_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o error_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o put_v to_o death_n the_o holy_a father_n who_o have_v explain_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a have_v honour_v and_o esteem_v they_o that_o neither_o ought_v she_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o be_v ill_o treat_v by_o they_o but_o rather_o receive_v and_o approve_v in_o explain_v the_o scripture_n she_o say_v to_o i_o sir_n you_o will_v always_o excuse_v this_o church_n because_o you_o have_v espouse_v she_o as_o i_o have_v also_o do_v it_o proceed_v from_o this_o that_o you_o do_v not_o yet_o distinguish_v what_o the_o true_a church_n be_v though_o i_o have_v so_o often_o speak_v to_o you_o of_o it_o the_o church_n in_o a_o perfect_a and_o define_v sense_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o soul_n 26._o which_o be_v unite_v in_o heart_n and_o will_v whole_o unto_o god_n these_o be_v his_o only_a spouse_n he_o never_o have_v any_o other_o no_o more_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n than_o the_o new_a yea_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n and_o will_v never_o have_v even_o to_o the_o end_n yea_o throughout_o all_o eternity_n nothing_o can_v be_v the_o church_n but_o that_o which_o be_v unite_v whole_o unto_o god_n no_o more_o than_o a_o woman_n can_v be_v a_o man_n spouse_n if_o she_o be_v not_o unite_v to_o he_o for_o if_o she_o join_v herself_o to_o another_o she_o be_v a_o adultress_n the_o same_o be_v it_o without_o comparison_n in_o the_o alliance_n which_o god_n make_v with_o soul_n if_o 2._o they_o withdraw_v from_o he_o and_o join_v themselves_o to_o any_o other_o thing_n they_o be_v adultress_n and_o worthy_a of_o be_v divorce_v if_o god_n permit_v a_o man_n to_o forsake_v his_o wife_n for_o whoredom_n wherefore_o shall_v not_o this_o law_n be_v observe_v by_o himself_o if_o rome_n with_o its_o college_n do_v remain_v unite_v to_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n she_o be_v the_o church_n and_o his_o spouse_n but_o if_o she_o be_v separate_v from_o that_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n she_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o civil_a and_o political_a assembly_n make_v always_o this_o distinction_n sir_n or_o otherwise_o you_o will_v be_v deceive_v take_v falsehood_n for_o truth_n if_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o pope_n with_o as_o many_o counsellor_n assemble_v and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o possess_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v not_o the_o church_n but_o if_o a_o simple_a woman_n that_o spin_v on_o a_o distaff_n do_v possess_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n she_o be_v the_o church_n the_o holy_a father_n be_v not_o ill_o treat_v by_o rome_n in_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o there_o be_v yet_o perhaps_o in_o their_o time_n in_o those_o assembly_n some_o soul_n which_o be_v church_n and_o who_o by_o confequence_n do_v defend_v the_o truth_n but_o at_o present_a this_o support_n be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v but_o rather_o mortal_a persecution_n a_o evil_a thing_n sir_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v maintain_v blind_o as_o if_o it_o be_v good_a therefore_o god_n have_v give_v you_o a_o good_a judgement_n to_o make_v this_o distinction_n for_o if_o you_o continue_v always_o fix_v in_o the_o resolution_n to_o take_v this_o outward_a body_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o holy_a church_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o i_o to_o discover_v to_o you_o her_o evil_a and_o the_o infidelity_n she_o have_v commit_v towards_o her_o lawful_a husband_n you_o will_v do_v as_o he_o who_o will_v permit_v his_o wife_n to_o play_v the_o adultress_n in_o dissemble_v it_o without_o be_v desirous_a to_o know_v or_o discover_v it_o the_o sin_n be_v as_o great_a to_o tolerate_v it_o as_o to_o do_v it_o if_o god_n permit_v i_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n open_o to_o that_o church_n which_o you_o esteem_v you_o will_v see_v with_o regret_n how_o ill_o she_o will_v treat_v i_o you_o can_v not_o deliver_v i_o from_o the_o peril_n to_o which_o your_o pious_a belief_n will_v expose_v i_o i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o for_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n she_o need_v offend_v no_o body_n that_o this_o be_v but_o what_o god_n have_v declare_v unto_o we_o that_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o desire_v to_o have_v still_o a_o more_o clear_a understanding_n of_o they_o yea_o even_o the_o wicked_a themselves_o that_o this_o ought_v not_o to_o displease_v they_o i_o entreat_v she_o to_o write_v bold_o she_o say_v when_o you_o shall_v read_v sir_n the_o 24_o chapter_n which_o i_o have_v promise_v you_o it_o may_v be_v you_o will_v change_v your_o opinion_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 12._o be_v like_a to_o a_o two-edged_a sword_n truth_n cut_v all_o that_o it_o meet_v with_o in_o opposition_n to_o it_o so_o that_o without_o respect_v any_o body_n we_o cut_v all_o sort_n of_o error_n and_o lie_n in_o follow_v only_o the_o straight_a truth_n blind_o and_o without_o know_v it_o we_o do_v often_o wound_v those_o of_o who_o we_o be_v not_o think_v if_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v well_o explain_v it_o will_v offend_v all_o the_o person_n that_o live_v now_o in_o the_o world_n yea_o those_o who_o be_v esteem_v holy_a and_o perfect_a for_o as_o we_o do_v not_o see_v so_o many_o little_a atom_n fly_v in_o the_o air_n when_o the_o sun_n do_v not_o shine_v bright_o as_o we_o do_v when_o he_o spread_v his_o beam_n clear_o even_o so_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v full_a of_o sin_n and_o imperfection_n 9_o do_v not_o perceive_v they_o so_o long_o as_o the_o clear_a understanding_n of_o true_a perfection_n be_v not_o give_v they_o they_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v very_o clean_o but_o so_o soon_o as_o this_o divine_a light_n shall_v give_v its_o ray_n every_o one_o will_v see_v evident_o that_o he_o be_v deceive_v that_o he_o have_v no_o righteousness_n and_o that_o he_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n therefore_o the_o devil_n will_v hinder_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v this_o light_n from_o be_v discover_v and_o will_v oppose_v himself_o thereunto_o even_o by_o those_o that_o have_v most_o authority_n that_o very_o few_o may_v perceive_v their_o blindness_n for_o if_o these_o explication_n be_v mature_o consider_v by_o every_o one_o all_o the_o world_n will_v be_v convert_v for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o charm_v than_o to_o consider_v that_o which_o god_n have_v do_v for_o man_n from_o his_o creation_n and_o continue_v even_o till_o now_o which_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o continue_a course_n of_o benefit_n all_o correspond_v to_o one_o another_o always_o in_o great_a perfection_n the_o creation_n the_o law_n of_o moses_n the_o prophet_n the_o gospel_n be_v all_o the_o same_o thing_n by_o a_o excellent_a harmony_n i_o ask_v she_o whether_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v not_o discover_v these_o thing_n aright_o and_o if_o they_o have_v not_o declare_v this_o to_o the_o world_n by_o so_o many_o exposition_n and_o book_n which_o they_o have_v write_v she_o say_v sir_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o ancient_a father_n shall_v have_v the_o understanding_n of_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o they_o understand_v that_o which_o man_n have_v need_v of_o then_o but_o since_o we_o draw_v near_o to_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n it_o be_v expedient_a for_o man_n now_o that_o they_o learn_v that_o which_o must_v fall_v out_o in_o their_o time_n therefore_o god_n now_o reveal_v the_o secret_n which_o he_o will_v then_o have_v to_o be_v keep_v hide_v when_o the_o apostle_n ask_v jesus_n christ_n when_o these_o thing_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v tell_v they_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v he_o answer_v they_o that_o 7._o it_o be_v not_o for_o they_o to_o know_v the_o time_n which_o the_o father_n have_v in_o his_o own_o power_n to_o show_v that_o unseasonable_a light_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v desire_v and_o that_o to_o he_o alone_o appertain_v the_o know_v the_o time_n and_o the_o hour_n of_o all_o thing_n thus_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o reserve_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n till_o the_o 4._o necessary_a time_n which_o be_v at_o present_a the_o holy_a father_n can_v not_o know_v then_o what_o he_o will_v reserve_v till_o now_o and_o all_o that_o they_o declare_v of_o it_o by_o so_o many_o
and_o acknowledge_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n which_o will_v 10._o 7._o leave_v nothing_o of_o all_o our_o good_a deed_n without_o 7._o a_o recompense_n no_o more_o than_o our_o evil_a deed_n without_o a_o punishment_n which_o every_o one_o shall_v receive_v by_o the_o just_a balance_n of_o his_o righteousness_n to_o accomplish_v which_o we_o must_v in_o this_o world_n have_v reparation_n of_o all_o the_o wrong_n which_o have_v be_v do_v we_o and_o the_o falsehood_n must_v be_v discover_v the_o mask_n must_v be_v take_v off_o from_o all_o man_n that_o their_o deceit_n and_o their_o hypocrisy_n may_v be_v know_v how_o they_o have_v deal_v fraudulent_o with_o the_o innocent_a all_o must_v 65._o be_v discover_v at_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o glory_n and_o all_o thing_n even_o material_a which_o have_v serve_v for_o our_o reproach_n must_v serve_v for_o our_o glory_n as_o to_o s._n lawrence_n his_o grid-iron_n and_o to_o s._n andrew_n his_o cross_n and_o so_o of_o all_o the_o other_o martyr_n and_o chief_o the_o instrument_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o will_v shine_v in_o his_o glory_n like_o precious_a stone_n and_o that_o material_o for_o otherwise_o there_o can_v not_o be_v have_v a_o perfect_a and_o complete_a reparation_n if_o we_o look_v but_o for_o a_o spirtual_a paradise_n because_o we_o suffer_v here_o in_o body_n and_o spirit_n both_o together_o 31._o this_o kingdom_n approach_v sir_n for_o the_o plague_n be_v already_o begin_v i_o say_v unto_o she_o that_o no_o body_n believe_v that_o the_o last_o plague_n be_v begin_v nor_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o earth_n she_o say_v sir_n 8._o the_o incredulous_a will_v go_v with_o sorcerer_n for_o he_o who_o have_v no_o belief_n of_o this_o kingdom_n can_v never_o well_o suffer_v the_o plague_n which_o go_v before_o it_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o k_o this_o hope_n alone_o that_o can_v give_v force_n to_o sustain_v those_o so_o great_a persecution_n that_o there_o never_o be_v any_o like_a unto_o they_o it_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v fear_v that_o these_o incredulous_a will_v perish_v with_o the_o wicked_a for_o if_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o last_o time_n and_o that_o the_o plague_n be_v begin_v we_o will_v assure_o be_v deceive_v by_o that_o pernicious_a one_o antichrist_n who_o reign_v in_o person_n in_o authority_n who_o we_o take_v sometime_o for_o holy_a and_o virtuous_a and_o believe_v that_o we_o do_v well_o to_o let_v ourselves_o be_v guide_v and_o govern_v by_o they_o if_o we_o lie_v aside_o the_o doubt_n or_o belief_n that_o we_o be_v fall_v into_o that_o dangerous_a time_n foretell_v by_o jesus_n christ_n wherein_o evil_a be_v cover_v with_o piety_n and_o if_o we_o 19_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o the_o plague_n which_o be_v begin_v be_v the_o beginning_n of_o sorrow_n with_o which_o god_n will_v purge_v the_o 14._o earth_n we_o shall_v easy_o be_v bring_v to_o murmur_n against_o he_o yea_o we_o shall_v fall_v it_o may_v be_v into_o despair_n in_o see_v the_o best_a christian_n persecute_v by_o person_n who_o seem_v worse_a than_o ourselves_o yea_o church_n ruin_v the_o religious_a banish_v and_o all_o that_o they_o call_v a_o church_n overturn_v and_o oppress_v in_o its_o source_n all_o this_o will_v give_v occasion_n to_o blaspheme_n against_o god_n in_o case_n we_o do_v not_o know_v the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n which_o have_v draw_v down_o these_o plague_n upon_o our_o head_n we_o will_v commit_v a_o thousand_o sin_n of_o murmur_n against_o our_o enemy_n and_o also_o against_o the_o disorder_n of_o those_o who_o ought_v to_o govern_v we_o set_v ourselves_o to_o seek_v human_a succour_n which_o will_v sometime_o do_v we_o more_o harm_n than_o our_o enemy_n and_o thus_o we_o shall_v suffer_v miserable_o as_o 19_o do_v thief_n and_o murderer_n whereas_o do_v we_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o last_o time_n and_o that_o the_o plague_n be_v begin_v we_o will_v return_v to_o god_n by_o penitence_n take_v all_o from_o his_o hand_n as_o well_o the_o rod_n as_o the_o bread_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n must_v come_v to_o pass_v and_o by_o suffering_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o his_o glory_n 26._o as_o jesus_n christ_n have_v pave_v the_o way_n i_o say_v unto_o she_o that_o i_o myself_o can_v hardly_o believe_v that_o the_o last_o plague_n be_v begin_v and_o also_o that_o jesus_n christ_n will_v come_v to_o reign_v upon_o the_o earth_n be_v it_o not_o that_o she_o give_v i_o the_o view_n and_o understanding_n of_o these_o thing_n she_o say_v sir_n this_o proceed_v partly_o from_o want_n of_o application_n of_o spirit_n and_o partly_o because_o the_o devil_n have_v bewitch_v the_o spirit_n of_o all_o man_n that_o they_o may_v not_o discover_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o happiness_n nor_o of_o their_o misery_n for_o if_o this_o be_v know_v many_o person_n will_v get_v out_o of_o darkness_n and_o will_v follow_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n whereas_o by_o that_o infatuation_n of_o spirit_n the_o good_a perish_v with_o the_o wicked_a and_o thus_o he_o gain_v all_o to_o himself_o to_o give_v you_o a_o firm_a belief_n that_o jesus_n christ_n will_v come_v to_o reign_v upon_o earth_n sir_n apply_v your_o mind_n serious_o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n you_o shall_v find_v through_o all_o that_o they_o declare_v this_o glorious_a come_n and_o all_o that_o man_n shall_v receive_v thereby_o this_o have_v be_v figure_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o all_o that_o have_v pass_v in_o it_o since_o all_o have_v be_v nothing_o but_o the_o figure_n of_o this_o glorious_a reign_n of_o jesus_n christ_n you_o have_v now_o a_o little_a prospect_n of_o this_o by_o what_o i_o have_v declare_v unto_o you_o search_v into_o the_o matter_n you_o will_v find_v the_o thing_n more_o true_a than_o all_o the_o other_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o more_o obscurity_n in_o it_o for_o the_o time_n be_v come_v for_o the_o understanding_n of_o it_o what_o the_o father_n in_o past_a time_n have_v explain_v with_o so_o much_o pain_n and_o so_o imperfect_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o you_o and_o in_o a_o perfect_a sense_n no_o body_n will_v be_v able_a to_o doubt_v or_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o who_o will_v submit_v his_o spirit_n unto_o god_n with_o humility_n of_o heart_n all_o that_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v have_v be_v fulfil_v but_o in_o part_n but_o you_o will_v find_v the_o accomplishment_n and_o the_o perfect_a sense_n in_o this_o 16._o glorious_a reign_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o discover_v assure_o that_o all_o which_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o declare_v can_v be_v understand_v of_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o of_o this_o reign_n remark_n all_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n which_o i_o have_v elsewhere_o explain_v to_o you_o no_o body_n can_v imagine_v that_o all_o that_o we_o ask_v in_o that_o prayer_n can_v be_v obtain_v during_o this_o miserable_a life_n and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o we_o pray_v for_o another_o life_n which_o we_o do_v not_o yet_o know_v 2._o and_o that_o this_o life_n also_o must_v be_v material_a as_o well_o as_o spiritual_a for_o if_o it_o be_v only_o divine_a we_o will_v not_o ask_v for_o daily_a bread_n nor_o that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v do_v there_o or_o that_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v hallow_v for_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v always_o in_o the_o empyreal_a heaven_n where_o no_o body_n have_v need_n of_o material_a bread_n spirit_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n there_o be_v nothing_o there_o likewise_o to_o be_v forgive_v for_o no_o body_n there_o offend_v his_o brother_n temptation_n be_v banish_v from_o thence_o and_o evil_n can_v enter_v there_o the_o bless_a life_n that_o we_o look_v for_o must_v needs_o be_v material_a as_o well_o as_o spiritual_a in_o which_o we_o shall_v have_v need_n of_o all_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o ask_v in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n since_o they_o can_v be_v obtain_v in_o this_o present_a life_n and_o jesus_n christ_n can_v not_o have_v make_v we_o ask_v for_o unprofitable_a thing_n or_o for_o those_o which_o he_o will_v not_o give_v this_o can_v not_o be_v do_v by_o a_o god_n who_o can_v do_v and_o know_v all_o thing_n for_o it_o will_v be_v altogether_o unprofitable_a to_o ask_v what_o we_o can_v obtain_v here_o and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o superfluous_a thing_n to_o ask_v that_o of_o which_o we_o will_v have_v no_o need_n in_o the_o empyreal_a heaven_n as_o they_o imagine_v paradise_n to_o be_v all_o the_o other_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v also_o like_a to_o the_o petition_n of_o that_o prayer_n for_o when_o he_o say_v 33._o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o
with_o do_v the_o outward_a ceremony_n without_o consider_v what_o be_v do_v baptism_n be_v a_o outward_a sign_n to_o show_v that_o he_o who_o be_v baptize_v give_v up_o and_o consecrate_v himself_o to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o will_v live_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n renounce_v the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o its_o pomp_n this_o be_v what_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v in_o the_o inward_a of_o his_o soul_n who_o desire_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o then_o to_o come_v public_o to_o the_o font_n of_o baptism_n to_o confirm_v the_o vow_n and_o promise_n that_o he_o have_v make_v to_o god_n in_o his_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v be_v public_o know_v and_o own_a by_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o baptism_n of_o new_a bear_v infant_n nothing_o of_o this_o can_v concur_v for_o the_o infant_n be_v weak_a have_v not_o yet_o the_o will_n to_o give_v itself_o to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n or_o to_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o yet_o to_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o the_o world_n and_o its_o pomp_n for_o it_o have_v no_o sense_n nor_o understanding_n more_o than_o a_o silly_a beast_n and_o the_o most_o part_n of_o parent_n who_o ought_v to_o supply_v the_o defect_n of_o the_o infant_n have_v not_o faith_n themselves_o and_o can_v teach_v they_o to_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n since_o they_o themselves_o will_v not_o do_v it_o on_o the_o contrary_a so_o soon_o as_o their_o child_n begin_v to_o have_v any_o little_a judgement_n they_o teach_v they_o to_o follow_v the_o world_n and_o its_o pomp_n which_o be_v very_o far_o from_o mind_v they_o that_o they_o have_v renounce_v it_o by_o baptism_n what_o effect_v therefore_o can_v this_o outward_a sign_n have_v when_o nothing_o be_v effectuate_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o he_o who_o receive_v it_o neither_o by_o himself_o nor_o by_o his_o parent_n and_o when_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o infant_n they_o lie_v for_o they_o say_v that_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o the_o infant_n can_v have_v this_o desire_n they_o say_v that_o he_o renounce_v the_o devil_n the_o world_n and_o its_o pomp_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o these_o outward_a ceremony_n be_v end_v they_o never_o think_v more_o on_o what_o they_o have_v promise_v in_o the_o child_n name_n far_o less_o do_v they_o acquaint_v he_o with_o it_o when_o he_o be_v grow_v up_o to_o the_o end_n the_o child_n may_v remember_v the_o promise_n which_o he_o make_v at_o baptism_n for_o in_o do_v this_o they_o will_v give_v a_o reproof_n to_o themselves_o because_o neither_o father_n nor_o mother_n nor_o godfather_n nor_o godmother_n nor_o any_o body_n at_o present_a observe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n though_o all_o christian_n be_v outward_o baptize_v they_o will_v count_v he_o a_o fool_n or_o a_o very_a precisian_n who_o shall_v affirm_v that_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o keep_v and_o observe_v the_o evangelical_n life_n because_o it_o be_v not_o any_o long_o in_o use_n they_o will_v even_o be_v ashamed_a to_o renounce_v the_o world_n and_o its_o pomp_n because_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o the_o most_o holy_a follow_v the_o world_n and_o its_o pomp_n the_o wise_a say_v that_o one_o must_v live_v civil_o and_o maintain_v himself_o in_o honour_n and_o the_o saint_n at_o present_a say_v that_o a_o man_n must_v accommodate_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n that_o we_o can_v make_v a_o world_n by_o ourselves_o we_o see_v the_o most_o reform_a monk_n study_v to_o please_v the_o world_n desire_v to_o be_v love_v and_o honour_v by_o it_o and_o will_v be_v very_o sorry_a to_o be_v hate_v by_o the_o world_n as_o jesus_n christ_n foretell_v his_o servant_n 19_o shall_v be_v on_o the_o contrary_a every_o one_o seek_v to_o draw_v the_o world_n to_o himself_o and_o to_o have_v its_o friendship_n to_o the_o end_n that_o have_v gain_v the_o heart_n he_o may_v likewise_o gain_v the_o purse_n be_v not_o these_o fine_a christian_n in_o parade_n and_o not_o in_o effect_n for_o they_o have_v no_o soon_o renounce_v in_o baptism_n the_o world_n and_o its_o pomp_n than_o they_o think_v of_o nothing_o but_o to_o follow_v and_o to_o love_v it_o as_o if_o their_o promise_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o formality_n of_o word_n they_o do_v with_o god_n as_o they_o will_v do_v with_o a_o fool_n promise_v he_o a_o great_a many_o thing_n to_o please_v he_o without_o have_v any_o desire_n to_o give_v he_o they_o baptism_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v but_o by_o he_o who_o resolve_v in_o himself_o to_o consecrate_v himself_o to_o god_n and_o to_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v before_o he_o be_v baptize_v and_o resolve_v of_o his_o own_o freewill_n that_o he_o will_v follow_v it_o quit_v the_o maxim_n of_o man_n which_o be_v all_o contrary_a to_o those_o of_o jesus_n christ_n 37._o the_o christian_n of_o old_a do_v so_o no_o body_n be_v make_v christian_n but_o they_o who_o of_o their_o deliberate_a will_n will_v consecrate_v themselves_o to_o god_n and_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o at_o present_a they_o force_v every_o one_o to_o be_v baptize_v before_o they_o have_v the_o use_v of_o reason_n without_o know_v what_o they_o do_v or_o what_o they_o promise_v i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o the_o custom_n of_o baptise_v child_n in_o their_o infancy_n be_v institute_v on_o good_a ground_n to_o the_o end_n no_o christian_n may_v die_v before_o they_o be_v baptize_v that_o all_o those_o who_o die_v in_o their_o childhood_n may_v assure_o be_v save_v she_o say_v sir_n i_o believe_v rather_o that_o the_o devil_n invent_v this_o to_o the_o end_n no_o christian_n may_v be_v save_v as_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o very_o few_o shall_v be_v save_v of_o those_o who_o be_v baptize_v in_o their_o infancy_n because_o when_o they_o be_v outward_o baptize_v they_o believe_v they_o be_v sufficient_o assure_v of_o their_o salvation_n 29_o which_o be_v the_o great_a mistake_n in_o the_o world_n for_o baptism_n operate_v nothing_o in_o our_o soul_n no_o more_o than_o the_o other_o sacrament_n but_o according_a to_o their_o disposition_n how_o can_v a_o child_n without_o judgement_n have_v the_o disposition_n requisite_a for_o receive_v baptism_n if_o their_o baptism_n be_v delay_v till_o they_o have_v their_o full_a reason_n we_o will_v certain_o yet_o find_v true_a christian_n for_o they_o who_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o be_v baptize_v unless_o it_o be_v out_o of_o hypocrisy_n but_o at_o present_a every_o body_n think_v himself_o a_o good_a christian_a if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v be_v outward_o baptize_v without_o consider_v that_o this_o sign_n give_v nothing_o to_o our_o soul_n 21._o if_o we_o have_v not_o suitable_a disposition_n if_o they_o be_v not_o baptize_v in_o their_o infancy_n all_o those_o who_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v will_v study_v to_o know_v what_o be_v necessary_a for_o become_v true_a christian_n and_o will_v have_v no_o rest_n till_o they_o have_v obtain_v this_o happiness_n but_o at_o present_a every_o one_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o this_o outward_a baptism_n not_o consider_v that_o to_o be_v christian_n 33._o they_o must_v follow_v the_o instruction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n without_o which_o it_o have_v be_v better_a they_o have_v never_o be_v baptize_v it_o be_v just_a the_o same_o as_o if_o a_o servant_n shall_v go_v hire_n out_o himself_o to_o serve_v some_o prince_n or_o lord_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v get_v on_o his_o livery_n shall_v quit_v his_o master_n to_o give_v himself_o to_o robbery_n set_v himself_o to_o steal_v and_o rob_v in_o the_o same_o habit_n which_o will_v serve_v he_o the_o better_a to_o catch_v his_o prey_n for_o the_o merchant_n who_o shall_v see_v he_o clothe_v with_o some_o prince_n or_o lord_n livery_n will_v not_o be_v aware_a that_o he_o be_v a_o robber_n till_o he_o see_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o but_o if_o this_o robber_n be_v some_o day_n seize_v by_o justice_n he_o will_v be_v more_o severe_o punish_v for_o have_v commit_v his_o theft_n and_o robbery_n in_o some_o prince_n livery_n than_o if_o it_o have_v be_v in_o his_o own_o habit._n even_o so_o it_o be_v when_o a_o person_n be_v baptize_v and_o immediate_o abandon_v himself_o to_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n he_o deceive_v god_n and_o the_o world_n and_o render_v himself_o subject_a to_o great_a chastisement_n than_o if_o he_o be_v not_o baptize_v because_o this_o outward_a sign_n which_o shall_v serve_v he_o to_o obtain_v grace_n serve_v for_o his_o great_a condemnation_n as_o the_o liverty_n serve_v the_o robber_n we_o see_v the_o devil_n have_v find_v out_o this_o invention_n to_o baptize_v young_a child_n know_v well_o that_o
christian_a have_v no_o need_n of_o be_v force_v and_o they_o who_o be_v not_o so_o have_v no_o need_n of_o these_o command_n i_o say_v i_o believe_v that_o all_o our_o good_a work_n to_o make_v they_o meritorious_a aught_o to_o proceed_v from_o the_o heart_n and_o from_o our_o will_n but_o that_o god_n alone_o can_v search_v the_o inward_a and_o therefore_o the_o church_n ordain_v outward_a thing_n of_o which_o she_o can_v judge_v and_o that_o to_o keep_v christian_n unite_v together_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o give_v they_o law_n and_o make_v they_o be_v observe_v she_o say_v sir_n you_o grant_v i_o by_o what_o you_o say_v that_o the_o church_n at_o present_a be_v not_o that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n establish_v since_o to_o keep_v christian_n unite_v she_o make_v law_n that_o be_v nothing_o but_o civil_a and_o temporal_a one_o respect_v only_o outward_a thing_n because_o that_o which_o be_v establish_v by_o jesus_n christ_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v uphold_v but_o 10._o by_o the_o bond_n of_o charity_n unite_n christian_n by_o a_o conformity_n of_o their_o will_n in_o god_n which_o unity_n of_o spirit_n appear_v sufficient_o by_o outward_a operation_n because_o the_o christian_n who_o be_v possess_v with_o charity_n can_v remain_v hide_v for_o charity_n be_v always_o work_v there_o need_v no_o other_o outward_a law_n to_o make_v appear_v to_o man_n whether_o we_o be_v true_a christian_n but_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o charity_n for_o our_o neighbour_n these_o thing_n be_v as_o well_o outward_a as_o inward_a and_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o man_n for_o to_o discover_v true_a christian_n it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o ordain_v they_o so_o many_o precept_n under_o pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v but_o too_o sufficient_a to_o regulate_v all_o their_o action_n and_o manner_n why_o shall_v they_o command_v the_o hear_n of_o mass_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n since_o jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o gospel_n have_v never_o oblige_v nor_o even_o counsel_v any_o body_n to_o do_v it_o nor_o yet_o to_o confess_v their_o sin_n once_o a_o year_n though_o indeed_o he_o say_v 16._o confess_v your_o sin_n one_o to_o another_o this_o be_v not_o that_o one_o must_v do_v it_o once_o a_o year_n but_o when_o he_o have_v sin_v he_o must_v be_v humble_v and_o confess_v to_o his_o brother_n that_o he_o be_v a_o sinner_n and_o this_o rather_o in_o public_a than_o in_o private_a that_o the_o humility_n of_o declare_v ourselves_o sinner_n and_o the_o confusion_n that_o we_o have_v to_o be_v know_v for_o such_o before_o man_n may_v give_v satisfactory_a punishment_n to_o our_o sin_n this_o be_v not_o to_o say_v that_o he_o must_v go_v and_o confess_v at_o certain_a time_n and_o day_n but_o when_o the_o sinner_n desire_v to_o return_v to_o god_n in_o heart_n and_o affection_n even_o though_o this_o shall_v not_o befall_v but_o once_o in_o his_o life_n and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o it_o he_o shall_v not_o cease_v for_o this_o to_o have_v the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o to_o obtain_v mercy_n from_o god_n and_o if_o to_o be_v save_v it_o be_v so_o precise_o necessary_a to_o communicate_v at_o easter_n how_o can_v a_o paul_n a_o macarius_n and_o anthony_n and_o so_o many_o other_o holy_a hermit_n have_v be_v save_v who_o end_v their_o life_n in_o the_o desert_n of_o egypt_n and_o thebais_n without_o have_v ever_o communicate_v or_o hear_v mass_n if_o jesus_n christ_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n when_o he_o say_v 53._o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o this_o church_n which_o you_o believe_v to_o be_v holy_a will_v have_v err_v in_o hold_v all_o these_o person_n for_o saint_n who_o never_o communicate_v or_o at_o least_o very_a seldom_o for_o st._n paul_n the_o hermit_n have_v be_v for_o so_o many_o year_n in_o the_o desert_n without_o see_v any_o body_n die_v without_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n the_o egyptian_a mary_n after_o have_v be_v thirty_o year_n without_o see_v any_o body_n receive_v it_o once_o only_o before_o her_o death_n with_o a_o thousand_o such_o like_a what_o can_v these_o be_v save_v without_o observe_v so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o these_o command_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o sanctify_v all_o the_o day_n of_o their_o life_n by_o a_o continual_a union_n with_o god_n as_o all_o true_a christian_n ought_v to_o do_v it_o be_v not_o needful_a for_o they_o to_o pitch_v upon_o certain_a day_n appoint_v by_o the_o church_n all_o their_o day_n none_o except_v be_v sanctify_v by_o continual_a prayer_n in_o like_a manner_n they_o can_v not_o observe_v the_o fast_n of_o lent_n and_o the_o other_o time_n express_o appoint_v for_o their_o life_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o continual_a fast_o take_v no_o other_o food_n but_o what_o be_v pure_o necessary_a as_o all_o true_a christian_n ought_v to_o do_v who_o expect_v to_o be_v satisfy_v in_o the_o other_o world_n without_o desire_v to_o satiate_v themselves_o in_o this_o why_o shall_v they_o who_o have_v study_v to_o defend_v this_o church_n say_v that_o people_n can_v marry_v in_o lent_n or_o advent_n neither_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n ever_o forbid_v such_o thing_n neither_o do_v they_o command_v the_o pay_v of_o tithe_n for_o that_o great_a apostle_n st._n paul_n say_v that_o 9_o his_o hand_n gain_v his_o bread_n and_o that_o he_o be_v chargeable_a to_o no_o body_n and_o jesus_n christ_n bid_v his_o disciple_n though_o 11._o the_o workman_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o reward_n take_v and_o eat_v whatsoever_o be_v give_v they_o and_o when_o they_o enter_v into_o a_o place_n and_o be_v not_o receive_v that_o theygo_o from_o it_o shake_v the_o dust_n off_o their_o foot_n whereas_o those_o council_n ordain_v the_o payment_n of_o tithe_n by_o force_n so_o that_o he_o who_o be_v want_v in_o it_o shall_v be_v treat_v as_o a_o criminal_a i_o do_v not_o know_v sir_n how_o you_o can_v say_v that_o all_o these_o law_n with_o so_o oblige_v they_o be_v needful_a to_o keep_v christian_n unite_v by_o many_o other_o to_o observe_v they_o by_o force_n because_o i_o can_v see_v nothing_o in_o all_o these_o ordinance_n which_o have_v the_o property_n of_o unite_n heart_n on_o the_o contrary_a rather_o of_o divide_v they_o i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o in_o all_o well_o order_v commonwealth_n there_o must_v always_o be_v head_n and_o superior_n who_o we_o ought_v to_o obey_v and_o follow_v their_o law_n or_o otherwise_o there_o can_v be_v no_o order_n she_o say_v sir_n if_o you_o hold_v the_o church_n for_o a_o civil_a commonwealth_n you_o have_v reason_n but_o if_o you_o hold_v she_o to_o be_v holy_a and_o spiritual_a or_o the_o spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n you_o be_v 20_o much_o in_o the_o wrong_n for_o her_o head_n be_v still_o her_o superior_a and_o have_v give_v she_o such_o excellent_a law_n and_o rule_n that_o no_o body_n can_v add_v any_o thing_n more_o perfect_a to_o they_o those_o who_o will_v needs_o make_v some_o change_n in_o they_o have_v whole_o confound_v they_o and_o they_o who_o will_v be_v their_o superior_n have_v abuse_v the_o grace_n of_o their_o liege_n lord_n since_o be_v appoint_v his_o lieutenant_n on_o earth_n to_o maintain_v his_o ordinance_n they_o have_v neglect_v they_o and_o have_v make_v other_o after_o their_o own_o mode_n or_o for_o their_o own_o advantage_n against_o the_o design_n of_o their_o sovereign_a master_n for_o by_o forbid_v to_o marry_v at_o certain_a time_n they_o disturb_v the_o order_n that_o god_n have_v set_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n nothing_o be_v more_o holy_a nor_o ever_o will_v be_v among_o man_n in_o this_o world_n than_o adam_n before_o his_o sin_n nevertheless_o god_n give_v he_o a_o wife_n that_o he_o may_v know_v she_o for_o the_o generation_n of_o man_n and_o for_o the_o perpetual_a unity_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v together_o if_o god_n find_v it_o meet_v that_o this_o marriage_n shall_v be_v institute_v in_o the_o earthly_a paradise_n in_o the_o most_o holy_a time_n that_o ever_o be_v before_o adam_n have_v sin_v why_o do_v these_o person_n forbid_v to_o marry_v in_o the_o time_n of_o lent_n and_o advent_v if_o it_o be_v for_o the_o piety_n of_o the_o time_n they_o will_v not_o give_v so_o many_o dispensation_n to_o do_v it_o after_o they_o have_v forbid_v it_o for_o ordinary_o we_o see_v more_o of_o the_o rich_a marry_v in_o this_o forbid_a time_n than_o in_o that_o which_o be_v allow_v it_o seem_v this_o prohibition_n be_v but_o for_o the_o poor_a who_o have_v not_o money_n enough_o to_o obtain_v these_o dispensation_n it_o be_v a_o pain_n to_o i_o to_o bend_v my_o mind_n under_o these_o law_n for_o i_o
of_o his_o church_n which_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o she_o have_v no_o fix_a place_n therefore_o she_o be_v call_v catholic_n or_o common_a and_o universal_a for_o she_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o place_n indifferent_o for_o otherwise_o none_o shall_v have_v the_o liberty_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n but_o they_o who_o remain_v in_o this_o fix_a place_n no_o sir_n this_o can_v be_v so_o because_o god_n have_v give_v liberty_n to_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n without_o have_v limit_v they_o to_o any_o particular_a nation_n or_o country_n but_o to_o all_o in_o general_n the_o church_n consequent_o may_v be_v as_o well_o among_o the_o jew_n turk_n and_o heathen_n as_o among_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o she_o do_v not_o consist_v but_o of_o soul_n who_o possess_v the_o law_n of_o god_n 31._o or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v all_o the_o same_o thing_n because_o this_o doctrine_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o proper_a mean_n for_o observe_v aright_o this_o law_n so_o that_o he_o who_o among_o the_o heathen_n shall_v live_v in_o a_o entire_a dependence_n upon_o god_n have_v his_o will_n conformable_a to_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n such_o a_o person_n will_v be_v the_o church_n even_o though_o he_o know_v no_o other_o precept_n or_o doctrine_n because_o all_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o even_o in_o the_o gospel_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o mean_n to_o attain_v to_o this_o dependence_n upon_o and_o conformity_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n so_o that_o he_o who_o be_v in_o this_o need_v no_o other_o command_n or_o precept_n to_o be_v assure_v of_o eternal_a bliss_n because_o all_o be_v comprehend_v and_o contain_v in_o this_o 6._o dependence_n upon_o god_n all_o other_o thing_n be_v but_o for_o enlarge_n and_o explain_v wherein_o this_o dependence_n on_o god_n consist_v therefore_o the_o gospel_n say_v 24._o deny_v yourselves_o to_o make_v we_o understand_v that_o as_o long_o as_o we_o live_v to_o ourselves_o we_o be_v not_o resign_v to_o god_n for_o if_o we_o rejoice_v in_o prosperity_n and_o be_v grieve_v in_o adversity_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o we_o be_v not_o yet_o resign_v to_o god_n but_o that_o we_o live_v to_o our_o own_o desire_n and_o will_n not_o to_o those_o of_o god_n who_o will_v never_o permit_v any_o thing_n to_o befall_v we_o but_o what_o be_v good_a and_o wholesome_a but_o when_o we_o live_v to_o ourselves_o we_o will_v have_v this_o and_o that_o according_a to_o our_o own_o judgement_n which_o be_v blind_a as_o to_o eternal_a thing_n for_o this_o cause_n jesus_n christ_n have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o teach_v we_o so_o many_o divers_a thing_n that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o know_v what_o hinder_v we_o from_o come_v to_o this_o dependence_n on_o god_n and_o also_o what_o make_v it_o easy_a to_o we_o but_o if_o we_o find_v this_o dependence_n without_o these_o mean_n we_o have_v fulfil_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o be_v the_o church_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o we_o hold_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o out_o of_o it_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n she_o reply_v and_o i_o doubt_v sir_n if_o one_o can_v be_v save_v in_o it_o since_o she_o be_v not_o govern_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n how_o can_v she_o guide_v any_o to_o salvation_n if_o the_o devil_n sit_v in_o her_o throne_n be_v it_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o he_o will_v say_v we_o his_o malice_n increase_v as_o his_o authority_n augment_v i_o can_v believe_v that_o one_o true_o christian_n whole_o resign_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n can_v remain_v in_o the_o college_n of_o rome_n for_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v a_o spirit_n so_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o rule_v they_o these_o reproof_n will_v be_v insupportable_a to_o they_o god_n himself_o can_v not_o preserve_v his_o church_n among_o they_o though_o it_o be_v but_o in_o one_o person_n only_o they_o will_v certain_o destroy_v it_o and_o that_o without_o delay_n if_o they_o teach_v that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o their_o dependence_n it_o be_v because_o they_o will_v fain_o rule_v over_o the_o world_n and_o be_v as_o great_a as_o god_n as_o the_o devil_n have_v this_o ambition_n since_o his_o creation_n and_o retain_v it_o hitherto_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o success_n because_o he_o hold_v at_o present_a almost_o all_o man_n under_o his_o authority_n for_o to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n out_o of_o the_o dominion_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o contradict_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o apostle_n have_v tell_v jesus_n christ_n that_o some_o teach_v the_o gospel_n who_o notwithstanding_o do_v not_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n nor_o his_o disciple_n he_o say_v to_o they_o 50._o let_v they_o alone_o for_o they_o who_o be_v not_o against_o we_o be_v with_o we_o shall_v the_o pope_n be_v a_o great_a judge_n to_o condemn_v those_o who_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o god_n because_o they_o do_v not_o depend_v on_o he_o this_o can_v not_o be_v true_a even_o though_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v as_o yet_o guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n she_o can_v not_o notwithstanding_o make_v void_a the_o salvation_n of_o those_o who_o do_v not_o follow_v she_o since_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o do_v it_o in_o his_o gospel_n which_o be_v their_o rule_n and_o that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o follow_v the_o apostle_n never_o condemn_v john_n disciple_n who_o follow_v not_o they_o and_o do_v otherwise_o than_o they_o there_o be_v a_o complaint_n indeed_o that_o they_o fast_v not_o as_o st._n john_n disciple_n do_v 15._o and_o jesus_n christ_n excuse_v they_o each_o apostle_n have_v his_o disciple_n apart_o and_o all_o the_o church_n be_v also_o separate_v that_o of_o peter_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o paul_n or_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n every_o one_o have_v his_o church_n and_o his_o disciple_n separately_z and_o none_o of_o they_o say_v that_o those_o who_o do_v not_o follow_v they_o be_v damn_v it_o suffice_v that_o all_o have_v the_o gospel_n for_o their_o rule_n without_o make_v any_o difference_n whether_o one_o be_v of_o james_n or_o of_o philip_n s._n paul_n even_o severe_o 13._o reprove_v those_o who_o say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n or_o of_o apollo_n ask_v they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o christ_n who_o die_v for_o they_o but_o at_o present_a they_o will_v have_v none_o to_o be_v save_v but_o those_o who_o be_v under_o one_o man_n only_o whereas_o then_o all_o be_v save_v who_o be_v under_o jesus_n christ_n have_v we_o get_v another_o god_n or_o rather_o another_o law_n since_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o these_o man_n will_v needs_o damn_v all_o those_o who_o will_v not_o follow_v this_o pope_n for_o my_o part_n i_o will_v rather_o upon_o pain_n of_o my_o own_o damnation_n assure_v all_o those_o of_o salvation_n who_o shall_v observe_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n in_o whatsoever_o place_n and_o condition_n they_o may_v be_v for_o jesus_n christ_n say_v to_o the_o young_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n 17._o who_o ask_v he_o what_o he_o shall_v do_v to_o be_v save_v keep_v the_o commandment_n without_o any_o other_o thing_n because_o all_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o a_o man_n must_v not_o go_v by_o four_o way_n when_o he_o know_v one_o that_o be_v straight_o and_o sure_a what_o ever_o man_n will_v make_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o truth_n that_o be_v of_o god_n be_v always_o the_o most_o certain_a i_o beg_v she_o will_v explain_v to_o i_o how_o god_n can_v not_o preserve_v his_o church_n in_o the_o college_n of_o rome_n even_o though_o it_o be_v but_o one_o person_n only_o see_v he_o be_v almighty_a she_o say_v sir_n the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n will_v never_o extend_v itself_o beyond_o his_o righteousness_n and_o his_o goodness_n he_o have_v give_v to_o man_n a_o freewill_n to_o use_v it_o at_o his_o pleasure_n by_o which_o he_o have_v make_v he_o partake_v in_o the_o deity_n which_o be_v the_o great_a good_a he_o can_v ever_o do_v to_o man_n for_o by_o this_o freewill_n he_o render_v he_o capable_a of_o take_v his_o delight_n with_o he_o or_o otherwise_o there_o will_v not_o have_v be_v any_o correspondence_n of_o god_n with_o man_n since_o likeness_n beget_v love_n and_o love_n be_v always_o bend_v to_o love_v its_o like_a if_o man_n have_v not_o have_v liberty_n of_o use_v his_o will_n he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v like_o to_o god_n in_o any_o thing_n for_o a_o creature_n bound_v and_o constrain_v have_v no_o relation_n to_o a_o almighty_a god_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o power_n of_o use_v his_o freewill_n shall_v be_v give_v he_o that_o god_n may_v take_v his_o delight_n with_o that_o which_o in_o some_o manner_n be_v like_a unto_o
may_v lose_v no_o occasion_n of_o follow_v the_o design_n of_o god_n and_o that_o you_o deceive_v no_o body_n in_o teach_v they_o that_o they_o have_v do_v enough_o in_o go_v to_o mass_n for_o though_o they_o shall_v hear_v a_o hundred_o every_o day_n this_o will_v avail_v they_o nothing_o if_o they_o have_v not_o charity_n which_o be_v not_o now_o cherish_v among_o christian_n though_o they_o assemble_v every_o day_n to_o mass_n because_o they_o be_v not_o teach_v for_o what_o it_o be_v institute_v since_o these_o romanist_n have_v turn_v all_o thing_n to_o their_o great_a advantage_n if_o we_o will_v examine_v narrow_o all_o the_o other_o sacrament_n we_o will_v find_v all_o the_o same_o mischief_n do_v to_o the_o interest_n of_o salvation_n by_o those_o new_a invention_n and_o change_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o it_o be_v better_a than_o that_o i_o do_v not_o exercise_v the_o ecclesiastical_a function_n since_o there_o be_v so_o much_o abuse_v and_o hazard_v in_o they_o she_o say_v you_o will_v not_o do_v ill_o sir_n to_o abstain_v from_o they_o and_o to_o live_v as_o if_o you_o be_v no_o priest_n be_v it_o not_o that_o not_o have_v as_o yet_o light_a enough_o to_o discover_v the_o evil_n which_o be_v hide_v in_o they_o you_o will_v by_o degree_n fall_v into_o scruple_n for_o leave_v off_o all_o your_o pious_a exercise_n pray_v to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v let_v you_o see_v what_o you_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o he_o will_v show_v you_o as_o he_o do_v i_o that_o all_o holy_a thing_n be_v become_v profane_a and_o that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n in_o this_o roman_a church_n which_o do_v not_o savour_n of_o its_o corruption_n all_o people_n believe_v that_o have_v declare_v their_o sin_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o get_v absolution_n from_o he_o they_o be_v pardon_v though_o it_o 7._o be_v god_n only_o who_o can_v pardon_v sin_n the_o priest_n can_v indeed_o pray_v for_o the_o penitent_n who_o humble_v himself_o to_o declare_v his_o sin_n as_o a_o intercessor_n between_o god_n and_o the_o penitent_a but_o he_o can_v pardon_v he_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n he_o may_v indeed_o judge_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o the_o penitent_a in_o justice_n be_v dispose_v to_o have_v the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o may_v give_v he_o ground_n to_o hope_v that_o he_o shall_v obtain_v it_o of_o god_n but_o not_o deceive_v he_o by_o make_v he_o believe_v that_o he_o himself_o will_v pardon_v they_o if_o so_o be_v he_o declare_v they_o to_o he_o for_o this_o declaration_n will_v do_v nothing_o without_o a_o sincere_a and_o a_o firm_a resolution_n of_o 13._o amendment_n which_o god_n regard_v that_o he_o may_v pardon_v according_a to_o his_o straight_a righteousness_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o may_v be_v mistake_v as_o well_o as_o all_o other_o men._n how_o can_v god_n have_v so_o little_a equity_n as_o to_o commit_v to_o some_o frail_a man_n the_o power_n of_o save_v and_o damn_v other_o what_o justice_n can_v there_o be_v that_o a_o confessor_n for_o want_n of_o the_o intention_n to_o absolve_v shall_v by_o this_o mean_n damn_v thousand_o of_o person_n who_o make_v their_o confession_n to_o he_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o horrible_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n for_o any_o to_o have_v such_o a_o persuasion_n that_o a_o well-meaning_a person_n true_o penitent_a after_o have_v due_o confess_v die_v in_o this_o state_n shall_v be_v damn_v because_o the_o priest_n have_v not_o the_o intention_n to_o absolve_v he_o if_o this_o be_v true_a it_o will_v be_v to_o render_v god_n a_o tyrant_n because_o all_o our_o good_a work_n will_v serve_v we_o for_o nothing_o in_o case_n our_o salvation_n do_v depend_v upon_o a_o good_a or_o ill_a absolution_n these_o thought_n or_o this_o belief_n will_v make_v we_o fall_v into_o idolatry_n in_o take_v man_n for_o god_n who_o can_v save_v or_o damn_v according_a to_o their_o fancy_n this_o god_n himself_o will_v never_o do_v because_o he_o can_v never_o depart_v from_o his_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n to_o judge_v we_o always_o according_a to_o they_o whereas_o man_n full_a of_o passion_n injustice_n and_o impiety_n can_v not_o but_o judge_v we_o according_a to_o these_o how_o little_a wisdom_n shall_v we_o attribute_v to_o god_n in_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v give_v man_n power_n to_o save_v and_o damn_v we_o he_o who_o have_v command_v we_o to_o worship_v none_o but_o 13._o one_o god_n alone_o he_o shall_v give_v we_o occasion_n of_o worship_v all_o these_o confessor_n who_o will_v be_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o christian_n do_v you_o not_o palpable_o feel_v sir_n what_o evident_a peril_n there_o be_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o those_o sacrament_n after_o the_o manner_n they_o be_v use_v at_o present_a it_o be_v far_o better_a to_o be_v idle_a than_o to_o do_v evil._n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o i_o doubt_v of_o the_o salvation_n of_o christian_n now_o when_o i_o see_v in_o their_o religious_a function_n so_o many_o thing_n against_o the_o righteousness_n the_o goodness_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n nevertheless_o i_o will_v not_o give_v you_o advice_n in_o this_o you_o may_v with_o your_o own_o natural_a judgement_n discern_v aright_o truth_n from_o lie_v and_o thereafter_o resolve_v to_o continue_v or_o leave_v off_o your_o ecclesiastical_a function_n for_o god_n never_o constrain_v any_o body_n each_o one_o remain_v free_a to_o choose_v the_o mean_n which_o he_o perceive_v to_o be_v most_o expedient_a without_o believe_v any_o thing_n blind_o no_o more_o what_o i_o say_v sir_n than_o if_o another_o say_v it_o to_o you_o but_o enter_v into_o yourself_o that_o you_o may_v judge_v upright_o of_o the_o pure_a truth_n you_o will_v perceive_v and_o feel_v it_o if_o you_o be_v disengage_v from_o all_o the_o discourse_n which_o these_o romanist_n have_v forge_v to_o make_v their_o authority_n valid_a free_a your_o spirit_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o imagination_n and_o argument_n and_o come_v to_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o judge_v if_o god_n will_v in_o justice_n put_v our_o damnation_n or_o our_o salvation_n into_o the_o power_n of_o any_o man_n unknown_a to_o we_o who_o may_v be_v a_o wicked_a person_n or_o a_o sorcerer_n in_o which_o case_n he_o will_v damn_v as_o many_o soul_n as_o he_o can_v to_o gratify_v the_o devil_n to_o who_o he_o belong_v it_o must_v not_o be_v say_v in_o this_o god_n be_v almighty_a or_o his_o work_n be_v incomprehensible_a for_o he_o never_o exert_v his_o power_n without_o his_o righteousness_n which_o be_v 14._o not_o incomprehensible_a but_o make_v itself_o 2._o be_v see_v and_o commprehend_v by_o all_o those_o who_o serious_o consider_v it_o because_o no_o good_a be_v perfect_a if_o it_o be_v not_o communicate_v and_o know_v i_o say_v to_o she_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v fear_v i_o have_v commit_v many_o fault_n through_o my_o blind_a submission_n to_o this_o roman_a church_n inquire_v of_o her_o the_o mean_n to_o repair_v they_o she_o say_v all_o that_o be_v pass_v be_v no_o long_o in_o your_o power_n you_o must_v beg_v pardon_n of_o god_n who_o be_v full_a of_o mercy_n and_o do_v not_o so_o much_o reprove_v the_o fault_n which_o be_v do_v with_o a_o good_a mean_v as_o those_o which_o be_v do_v through_o pure_a wickedness_n though_o ignorance_n do_v not_o excuse_v sin_n yet_o it_o lessen_v its_o malignity_n because_o it_o have_v not_o the_o full_a consent_n of_o the_o will._n but_o now_o endeavour_v to_o search_v more_o to_o the_o bottom_n the_o thing_n which_o concern_v your_o salvation_n and_o 1._o do_v not_o believe_v every_o spirit_n but_o try_v if_o what_o you_o be_v to_o do_v or_o believe_v be_v of_o god_n or_o of_o man_n or_o of_o the_o devil_n for_o all_o that_o be_v not_o o_o god_n be_v evil_a 14._o and_o for_o want_v of_o discover_v this_o truth_n each_o one_o run_v blind_o to_o his_o own_o perdition_n believe_v even_o that_o they_o do_v well_o in_o follow_v so_o great_a a_o number_n of_o great_a and_o wise_a man_n who_o maintain_v this_o blind_a submission_n 14._o which_o be_v not_o fit_v but_o for_o mean_a spirit_n though_o so_o many_o of_o good_a judgement_n have_v follow_v it_o for_o this_o long_a time_n bygone_a which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v find_v without_o some_o infatuation_n of_o the_o understanding_n with_o which_o the_o devil_n have_v possess_v all_o those_o who_o lean_v to_o their_o own_o wisdom_n or_o authority_n these_o have_v their_o mind_n bewitch_v have_v insinuate_v their_o error_n or_o ignorances_n into_o other_o and_o so_o the_o devil_n by_o little_a and_o little_o gain_v all_o some_o by_o malice_n and_o other_o by_o ignorance_n so_o that_o i_o do_v not_o see_v any_o remedy_n can_v be_v put_v to_o this_o but_o by_o the_o
we_o do_v work_n as_o good_a which_o be_v but_o indifferent_a or_o indeed_o sometime_o evil_a for_o to_o go_v to_o church_n only_o out_o of_o custom_n be_v a_o indifferent_a work_n and_o if_o be_v there_o we_o behave_v as_o in_o a_o profane_a place_n it_o be_v a_o evil_a work_n it_o be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o the_o frequent_v of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o if_o we_o give_v alm_n through_o some_o natural_a tenderness_n or_o inclination_n this_o work_n have_v not_o that_o righteousness_n nor_o goodness_n to_o make_v it_o pass_v for_o good_a in_o god_n sight_n so_o that_o to_o do_v no_o good_a work_n before_o god_n and_o notwithstanding_o to_o presume_v of_o salvation_n be_v a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o we_o believe_v we_o have_v merit_v salvation_n by_o good_a work_n which_o do_v not_o derive_v their_o goodness_n from_o god_n nevertheless_o we_o think_v he_o be_v oblige_v to_o give_v we_o paradise_n 11._o as_o the_o most_o part_n of_o pious_a and_o religious_a person_n do_v presume_v to_o have_v that_o by_o right_o of_o justice_n which_o be_v not_o due_a to_o they_o because_o there_o be_v none_o but_o true_a righteousness_n and_o charity_n that_o can_v be_v call_v good_a work_n by_o which_o we_o may_v hope_v for_o salvation_n and_o though_o none_o be_v adorn_v with_o these_o virtue_n each_o one_o notwithstanding_o believe_v he_o shall_v obtain_v it_o as_o if_o god_n can_v save_v without_o righteousness_n there_o be_v also_o another_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v to_o impugn_v the_o know_a truth_n this_o be_v now_o common_o practise_v by_o those_o who_o be_v call_v spiritual_a for_o if_o we_o shall_v tell_v any_o of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v not_o true_a christian_n or_o that_o we_o live_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n or_o that_o the_o world_n be_v judge_v and_o that_o its_o wickedness_n be_v come_v to_o the_o height_n they_o will_v believe_v nothing_o of_o this_o love_v rather_o to_o stick_v to_o their_o old_a custom_n than_o to_o learn_v how_o they_o may_v become_v true_a christian_n and_o they_o will_v likewise_o scruple_n to_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n though_o we_o see_v by_o man_n life_n and_o manner_n that_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v be_v engage_v to_o the_o devil_n and_o though_o they_o see_v no_o hope_n or_o appearance_n that_o the_o world_n will_v grow_v better_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v judge_v thus_o they_o impugn_v the_o truth_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n the_o belief_n of_o which_o may_v bring_v they_o to_o conversion_n and_o to_o a_o life_n lead_v to_o salvation_n but_o they_o impugn_v all_o these_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v continue_v in_o their_o so_o dangerous_a darkness_n though_o they_o be_v sufficient_o know_v to_o all_o those_o who_o will_v open_v their_o eye_n but_o they_o who_o will_v impugn_v the_o truth_n commit_v this_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o other_o for_o they_o will_v never_o be_v convert_v 11._o because_o of_o the_o resistance_n which_o they_o make_v to_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v that_o that_o give_v salvation_n they_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o their_o life_n be_v not_o that_o of_o a_o true_a christian_a nevertheless_o they_o impugn_v this_o truth_n because_o they_o have_v no_o desire_n to_o become_v one_o they_o see_v the_o devil_n rule_v through_o all_o in_o lie_n and_o deceit_n and_o that_o all_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesuschrist_n and_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n that_o they_o may_v resist_v and_o beware_v of_o he_o and_o by_o impugn_v this_o truth_n they_o desire_v not_o to_o avoid_v his_o snare_n they_o see_v that_o wickedness_n be_v universal_o at_o a_o height_n and_o they_o will_v not_o 8._o believe_v that_o the_o world_n be_v judge_v that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v afraid_a of_o this_o judgement_n another_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o envy_n of_o the_o spiritual_a good_a of_o other_o which_o be_v so_o general_o commit_v that_o almost_o they_o make_v no_o reflection_n on_o it_o and_o among_o the_o most_o pious_a this_o envy_n be_v the_o most_o ordinary_a we_o may_v only_o remark_n the_o several_a order_n of_o religious_a person_n they_o be_v almost_o insupportable_a to_o one_o another_o each_o one_o value_v his_o own_o order_n and_o community_n and_o they_o can_v hear_v the_o perfection_n and_o praise_n of_o other_o mention_v without_o have_v a_o spiritual_a envy_n against_o they_o secret_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o even_o if_o a_o particular_a person_n among_o they_o excel_v the_o rest_n in_o spiritual_a good_a he_o will_v be_v envy_v yea_o hardly_o use_v by_o all_o the_o rest_n or_o imprison_v if_o he_o shall_v live_v in_o great_a perfection_n among_o they_o than_o general_o they_o do_v or_o shall_v declare_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o fault_n so_o that_o if_o a_o votary_n of_o any_o of_o their_o religious_a order_n shall_v observe_v literal_o the_o gospel_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v leave_v we_o i_o believe_v he_o will_v be_v martyr_v or_o so_o hardly_o use_v by_o the_o rest_n that_o it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o live_v among_o they_o without_o suffer_v a_o thousand_o death_n of_o persecution_n and_o for_o any_o secular_a person_n who_o will_v observe_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o world_n he_o will_v be_v envy_v likewise_o by_o all_o those_o who_o profess_v to_o be_v virtuous_a and_o be_v not_o who_o will_v reject_v with_o contempt_n this_o manner_n of_o practice_n which_o will_v not_o be_v conformable_a to_o their_o own_o for_o there_o be_v such_o a_o secret_a pride_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o can_v suffer_v that_o another_o shall_v lead_v a_o better_a life_n than_o themselves_o nor_o even_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v the_o name_n of_o it_o but_o they_o will_v endeavour_v to_o vilify_v and_o despise_v he_o or_o make_v he_o to_o be_v suspect_v of_o levity_n or_o other_o evil_n in_o which_o be_v now_o fulfil_v the_o prediction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o say_v 17._o you_o shall_v be_v hate_v of_o all_o for_o my_o name_n be_v sake_n for_o the_o apostle_n be_v never_o hate_v of_o all_o because_o many_o still_o love_v and_o follow_v they_o but_o at_o present_a this_o warn_v be_v full_o accomplish_v because_o he_o who_o walk_v in_o the_o truth_n be_v hate_v of_o all_o for_o this_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o the_o spiritual_a envy_v of_o another_o possess_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o those_o who_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o virtue_n because_o have_v no_o true_a virtue_n they_o envy_v that_o which_o be_v true_a and_o continue_v therein_o all_o their_o day_n without_o desire_v to_o change_v because_o they_o do_v not_o esteem_v this_o a_o sin_n but_o rather_o wisdom_n that_o they_o will_v not_o own_o what_o they_o do_v not_o practice_v cover_v this_o sin_n with_o a_o fidelity_n and_o constancy_n in_o what_o have_v be_v first_o teach_v they_o and_o thus_o they_o die_v in_o envy_n another_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v obstinacy_n in_o sin_n be_v also_o in_o use_n among_o those_o who_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o virtue_n for_o not_o be_v willing_a to_o own_o the_o forementioned_a thing_n to_o be_v sin_n they_o continue_v obstinate_a in_o they_o and_o therefore_o will_v not_o be_v forgive_v because_o they_o will_v not_o ask_v pardon_n nor_o repent_v of_o they_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v not_o sin_n because_o they_o be_v inward_a and_o spiritual_a therefore_o they_o die_v in_o obstinacy_n in_o sin_n and_o even_o though_o they_o shall_v live_v till_o the_o other_o world_n they_o will_v not_o be_v convert_v from_o the_o presumption_n of_o their_o salvation_n because_o they_o be_v possess_v with_o a_o good_a opinion_n of_o their_o good_a work_n neither_o will_v they_o submit_v to_o the_o truth_n which_o will_v show_v they_o the_o contrary_n thus_o they_o commit_v this_o sin_n with_o the_o other_o follow_v one_o which_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wilful_a munder_n be_v also_o commit_v by_o the_o same_o spiritual_a person_n and_o they_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o for_o very_o often_o they_o occasion_n death_n to_o themselves_o or_o other_o by_o their_o sensual_a or_o indiscreet_a inclination_n how_o many_o of_o those_o do_v we_o see_v wed_v to_o their_o appetite_n of_o eat_v drink_v and_o other_o bodily_a exercise_n though_o they_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o their_o health_n they_o will_v not_o change_v nor_o leave_v they_o even_o though_o they_o be_v advertise_v of_o it_o how_o many_o die_n before_o their_o time_n by_o too_o much_o eat_v or_o drink_v or_o take_v something_o prejudicial_a to_o their_o health_n or_o
creator_n of_o all_o thing_n if_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n have_v consist_v in_o church_n and_o sumptuous_a ornament_n will_v not_o he_o to_o who_o all_o appertain_v have_v pitch_v upon_o they_o and_o build_v they_o what_o dotage_n do_v man_n now_o publish_v that_o god_n be_v honour_v by_o great_a building_n and_o rich_a ornament_n so_o our_o dung_n shall_v be_v his_o honour_n for_o 15._o all_o that_o be_v fair_a and_o good_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n be_v nothing_o but_o dung_n before_o god_n we_o have_v renounce_v the_o pomp_n of_o the_o world_n that_o we_o may_v become_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o same_o pomp_n we_o will_v honour_v he_o in_o his_o church_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o renounce_v the_o pomp_n of_o the_o world_n to_o become_v christian_n since_o these_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n it_o have_v be_v better_a to_o increase_v these_o since_o they_o honour_v god_n that_o by_o the_o increase_n of_o they_o god_n may_v receive_v increase_n of_o glory_n what_o blindness_n of_o mind_n be_v it_o sir_n that_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o god_n be_v honour_v by_o worldly_a pomp_n when_o they_o be_v apply_v to_o church-wall_n if_o they_o displease_v god_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o christian_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v they_o displease_v he_o in_o church_n and_o place_n that_o be_v peculiar_o dedicate_v unto_o he_o for_o prayer_n since_o this_o do_v still_o require_v attention_n and_o these_o pompous_a and_o magnificent_a ornament_n serve_v for_o nothing_o but_o to_o distract_v and_o divert_v the_o mind_n by_o regard_v these_o pomp_n and_o ornament_n of_o church_n which_o do_v certain_o distract_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o those_o who_o regard_v they_o and_o can_v serve_v for_o nothing_o but_o to_o satisfy_v the_o avarice_n of_o those_o who_o covet_v they_o nevertheless_o they_o call_v those_o charitable_a who_o afford_v they_o money_n wherewith_o to_o provide_v all_o these_o pomp_n and_o ornament_n of_o church_n every_o one_o praise_n and_o esteem_v they_o as_o if_o god_n be_v a_o vain_a god_n who_o will_v be_v adorn_v with_o fine_a garment_n if_o he_o will_v have_v a_o rich_a temple_n in_o solomon_n time_n it_o be_v because_o people_n be_v then_o so_o gross_a that_o they_o can_v comprehend_v nothing_o of_o god_n or_o of_o his_o majesty_n but_o by_o gross_a and_o material_a thing_n but_o now_o that_o we_o have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o have_v receive_v light_a enough_o to_o know_v that_o god_n 24._o be_v a_o spirit_n and_o life_n and_o not_o bodily_a or_o material_a so_o that_o they_o who_o go_v to_o cloister_n or_o religious_a order_n that_o they_o may_v follow_v jesus_n be_v great_o deceive_v because_o there_o he_o be_v not_o at_o all_o follow_v but_o oppose_v for_o which_o they_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v the_o cloister_n of_o antichi_v than_o of_o christ_n because_o the_o thing_n wherein_o they_o contradict_v he_o be_v more_o than_o those_o wherein_o they_o follow_v he_o i_o ask_v if_o those_o will_v not_o be_v save_v who_o shall_v enter_v into_o a_o religious_a state_n with_o a_o good_a intention_n and_o be_v in_o it_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o live_v well_o according_a to_o their_o language_n she_o say_v sir_n these_o be_v all_o impostor_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o they_o promise_v poverty_n and_o they_o observe_v it_o not_o because_o they_o yet_o covet_v worldly_a good_n and_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o please_v man_n that_o they_o may_v give_v they_o of_o their_o good_n these_o vow_n oblige_v they_o not_o to_o desire_v riches_n and_o they_o do_v their_o best_a to_o have_v they_o if_o they_o can_v desire_v they_o much_o less_o can_v they_o possess_v or_o receive_v they_o they_o vow_v chastity_n also_o and_o very_o often_o they_o be_v content_v only_o by_o force_n and_o for_o want_v of_o occasion_n god_n who_o try_v 10._o the_o reins_o see_v well_o if_o their_o heart_n and_o their_o thought_n be_v chaste_a since_o so_o many_o thing_n contrary_a thereto_o be_v hear_v of_o they_o they_o vow_v obedience_n and_o they_o be_v full_a of_o self-will_n so_o far_o be_v they_o from_o obey_v god_n that_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hearken_v to_o he_o and_o be_v subject_a only_o to_o their_o own_o will_n and_o desire_n without_o any_o other_o submission_n by_o what_o mean_n will_v you_o have_v these_o person_n save_v who_o falsify_v their_o faith_n to_o god_n since_o those_o can_v be_v save_v who_o falsify_v their_o faith_n to_o man_n some_o falsify_v their_o faith_n to_o god_n out_o of_o malice_n and_o hypocrisy_n and_o other_o falsify_v it_o out_o of_o ignorance_n be_v direct_v in_o their_o faith_n more_o according_a to_o what_o other_o do_v persuade_v they_o than_o according_a to_o their_o real_a practice_n they_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o poverty_n be_v observe_v when_o they_o possess_v nothing_o in_o particular_a and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n since_o the_o king_n and_o the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o world_n do_v ordinary_o profess_v nothing_o in_o particular_a have_v people_n and_o officer_n under_o they_o who_o govern_v their_o revenue_n even_o as_o these_o votary_n of_o poverty_n have_v who_o will_v not_o by_o it_o be_v deprive_v of_o a_o glass_n of_o wine_n or_o any_o the_o least_o thing_n they_o be_v in_o this_o more_o happy_a than_o secular_a person_n who_o be_v oblige_v to_o care_n and_o labour_n for_o necessary_a thing_n whereas_o these_o monk_n have_v all_o at_o their_o wish_n without_o pain_n or_o labour_n and_o if_o they_o be_v deprive_v of_o a_o wife_n they_o be_v free_a also_o of_o the_o labour_n which_o marriage_n bring_v along_o with_o it_o so_o that_o their_o chastity_n be_v more_o sensual_a than_o the_o be_v join_v with_o some_o person_n of_o a_o froward_a or_o contrary_a humour_n which_o be_v more_o irksome_a than_o continence_n so_o that_o these_o monk_n who_o be_v call_v penitent_n do_v far_o less_o of_o petence_n in_o their_o monastery_n than_o they_o will_v do_v if_o they_o be_v out_o of_o they_o for_o their_o vow_n of_o obedience_n do_v constrain_v they_o only_o to_o what_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o do_v they_o have_v no_o soon_o pass_v their_o novitiate_a but_o they_o be_v absolute_a lord_n and_o take_v the_o will_n of_o their_o superior_n for_o that_o of_o god_n they_o make_v they_o easy_o to_o condescend_v to_o they_o else_o they_o will_v become_v rebellious_a and_o chagrin_v or_o disturber_n of_o other_o and_o nevertheless_o they_o will_v think_v they_o have_v keep_v their_o three_o vow_n and_o believe_v that_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o shall_v go_v to_o paradise_n though_o indeed_o all_o their_o virtue_n be_v nothing_o but_o imaginary_a one_o or_o apish_a trick_n and_o though_o they_o shall_v live_v well_o according_a to_o their_o knowledge_n yet_o they_o perish_v because_o ignorance_n do_v not_o excuse_n sin_n to_o be_v save_v we_o must_v of_o necessity_n have_v the_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n these_o for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v none_o of_o these_o virtue_n for_o that_o can_v be_v true_a righteousness_n to_o quit_v their_o own_o wealth_n to_o go_v afterward_o and_o beg_v that_o of_o other_o who_o very_o often_o have_v need_n of_o it_o themselves_o and_o yet_o dare_v not_o refuse_v these_o who_o they_o esteem_v to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v it_o just_a to_o live_v upon_o alm_n when_o the_o body_n and_o mind_n be_v sound_a for_o labour_n neither_o be_v it_o just_a to_o leave_v their_o own_o good_n to_o their_o kinsman_n to_o enrich_v they_o and_o they_o themselves_o go_v live_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n for_o my_o part_n sir_n i_o perceive_v in_o my_o interior_a that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v unrighteousness_n before_o god_n however_o they_o cover_v they_o with_o perfection_n and_o virtue_n neither_o do_v i_o see_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n reign_n in_o these_o soul_n because_o its_o property_n be_v to_o do_v good_a to_o all_o and_o to_o do_v evil_a to_o none_o but_o we_o see_v these_o religious_a person_n do_v good_a only_o to_o themselves_o or_o those_o who_o be_v associate_v with_o they_o study_v to_o do_v mischief_n to_o all_o those_o who_o will_v not_o follow_v they_o and_o as_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n it_o be_v yet_o less_o observe_v by_o they_o than_o the_o two_o other_o virtue_n for_o all_o their_o work_n be_v nothing_o but_o external_a far_o from_o the_o real_a truth_n of_o god_n which_o appear_v always_o to_o be_v what_o it_o be_v and_o these_o monk_n make_v a_o show_n of_o the_o holiness_n and_o virtue_n which_o they_o do_v not_o possess_v but_o be_v true_o hypocrite_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o many_o of_o these_o monk_n be_v saint_n and_o do_v miracle_n she_o say_v they_o become_v not_o saint_n sir_n by_o that_o manner_n
they_o say_v it_o daily_o or_o they_o imagine_v that_o this_o come_v shall_v be_v so_o sudden_o as_o if_o the_o judgement_n be_v to_o be_v by_o way_n of_o enchantment_n and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o pa●s_n in_o a_o instant_a or_o in_o one_o day_n these_o be_v foolish_a speculation_n for_o the_o judgement_n be_v already_o begin_v and_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o year_n it_o shall_v last_v only_o at_o the_o end_n 30._o jesus_n christ_n shall_v appear_v upon_o the_o earth_n in_o glory_n and_o majesty_n and_o so_o shall_v 13._o converse_v with_o man_n who_o shall_v be_v all_o make_v happy_a with_o his_o glorious_a presence_n which_o shall_v fill_v they_o with_o glory_n and_o shall_v wipe_v away_o all_o their_o tear_n and_o grief_n to_o bring_v they_o into_o joy_n that_o shall_v never_o end_v they_o who_o will_v not_o believe_v this_o be_v enemy_n of_o their_o own_o good_a because_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n that_o can_v give_v they_o 5._o more_o constancy_n to_o suffer_v than_o the_o hope_n they_o have_v that_o in_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v see_v the_o glorious_a come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o earth_n all_o sort_n of_o consolation_n be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o the_o jew_n look_v for_o the_o come_v of_o their_o messiah_n in_o glory_n that_o he_o will_v come_v to_o reign_v and_o abide_v with_o they_o but_o that_o the_o christian_n look_v for_o he_o only_o to_o come_v and_o judge_v the_o world_n and_o to_o go_v away_o again_o carrying_z along_o with_o he_o all_o the_o bless_a she_o say_v sir_n the_o jew_n shall_v not_o be_v disappoint_v of_o their_o expectation_n they_o shall_v see_v their_o messiah_n in_o glory_n 24._o who_o will_v govern_v they_o upon_o earth_n converse_v eat_v and_o drink_v with_o they_o for_o he_o himself_o say_v that_o 37._o he_o will_v make_v his_o friend_n sit_v down_o at_o his_o table_n and_o that_o he_o will_v rise_v up_o and_o serve_v they_o now_o in_o this_o paradise_n which_o the_o christian_n imagine_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o need_n of_o sit_v at_o a_o table_n nor_o eat_v nor_o be_v serve_v and_o also_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n 29._o that_o he_o will_v drink_v no_o more_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n till_o he_o drink_v it_o new_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o father_n he_o mean_v certain_o of_o the_o earth_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o kingdom_n that_o god_n will_v give_v to_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n because_o in_o the_o divine_a kingdom_n there_o can_v be_v no_o plant_v of_o vine_n nor_o make_v of_o press_n to_o drink_v wine_n there_o true_o sir_n the_o christian_n be_v superstitious_a in_o many_o thing_n and_o they_o judge_v rash_o of_o all_o that_o they_o do_v not_o comprehend_v they_o may_v clear_o see_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v have_v a_o glorious_a reign_n and_o that_o he_o 25._o will_v be_v the_o restorer_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o also_o the_o saviour_n of_o man_n because_o all_o 21._o the_o prophet_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o saint_n have_v sufficient_o speak_v of_o these_o thing_n which_o shall_v certain_o come_v to_o pass_v for_o the_o scripture_n can_v err_v or_o fail_v but_o because_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o complete_a knowledge_n of_o they_o to_o explain_v all_o the_o christian_n fancy_n in_o their_o speculation_n that_o this_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o a_o divine_a and_o incomprehensible_a paradise_n without_o reflect_v that_o the_o divine_a kingdom_n can_v not_o be_v promise_v to_o jesus_n christ_n because_o as_o god_n he_o always_o possess_v it_o and_o have_v no_o need_n of_o be_v promise_v what_o he_o possess_v for_o possession_n be_v always_o great_a than_o promise_n for_o that_o be_v whole_o accomplish_v by_o possession_n therefore_o the_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n must_v be_v on_o earth_n where_o he_o shall_v reign_v 9_o over_o all_o man_n shall_v save_v they_o and_o re-establish_a all_o thing_n because_o in_o the_o divine_a heaven_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v reestablish_v for_o nothing_o be_v ever_o spoil_v there_o nor_o any_o to_o be_v save_v because_o all_o that_o be_v there_o have_v salvation_n and_o whither_o can_v they_o imagine_v that_o god_n shall_v carry_v the_o bless_a with_o he_o since_o he_o comprehend_v all_o thing_n and_o can_v be_v contain_v by_o any_o thing_n they_o speak_v of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o have_v a_o closet_n somewhere_o for_o his_o retirement_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o the_o jew_n have_v look_v a_o long_a time_n for_o the_o messiah_n but_o that_o the_o christian_n do_v not_o expect_v he_o till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a she_o say_v sir_n the_o jew_n have_v do_v well_o always_o to_o wait_v for_o their_o messiah_n for_o a_o thing_n be_v then_o more_o love_v when_o it_o be_v long_o desire_v it_o be_v a_o constant_a faith_n that_o make_v they_o persevere_v in_o this_o expectation_n which_o shall_v be_v recompense_v with_o a_o great_a joy_n when_o they_o shall_v receive_v the_o fruit_n of_o their_o hope_n for_o it_o be_v not_o vain_a but_o very_o well_o found_v on_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o most_o solid_a foundation_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n since_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o a_o alwise_a all-good_a and_o almighty_a god_n but_o when_o the_o christian_n look_v for_o their_o saviour_n only_o on_o a_o certain_a day_n 46._o they_o be_v not_o so_o diligent_a to_o prepare_v for_o his_o come_v which_o they_o imagine_v to_o be_v yet_o far_o from_o they_o they_o confound_v divers_a thing_n together_o which_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o one_o another_o and_o they_o make_v but_o one_o day_n of_o the_o plague_n the_o judgement_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o come_v of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o glory_n as_o if_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v do_v together_o but_o they_o be_v great_o deceive_v 33._o we_o have_v not_o a_o god_n of_o confusion_n who_o surprise_v person_n at_o unaware_o confound_v they_o by_o precipitate_v thing_n on_o the_o contrary_a all_o his_o way_n be_v so_o well_o regulate_v and_o order_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o devil_n in_o hell_n that_o can_v say_v in_o truth_n that_o god_n give_v he_o the_o least_o surprise_n or_o that_o he_o can_v find_v in_o all_o his_o work_n the_o least_o injustice_n or_o want_n of_o goodness_n and_o truth_n this_o be_v so_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o god_n shall_v send_v all_o his_o plague_n in_o one_o day_n that_o no_o body_n may_v have_v leisure_n to_o be_v convert_v be_v surprise_v so_o sudden_o with_o so_o many_o different_a evil_n as_o to_o be_v chastise_v judge_v raise_v again_o save_v or_o damn_v all_o in_o one_o day_n if_o god_n have_v be_v just_a good_a and_o true_a from_o all_o eternity_n will_v he_o become_v impious_a at_o the_o last_o day_n this_o can_v be_v but_o man_n mistake_v he_o and_o every_o one_o judge_n of_o he_o according_a to_o their_o fancy_n for_o if_o they_o will_v judge_v upright_o they_o will_v not_o dare_v to_o say_v that_o god_n can_v surprise_v man_n to_o judge_n and_o chastise_v they_o so_o sudden_o i_o will_v glad_o ask_v christian_n where_o they_o find_v it_o write_v how_o long_o the_o judgement_n shall_v last_v i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o no_o body_n have_v distinguish_v these_o time_n and_o that_o all_o christian_n believe_v that_o the_o judgement_n the_o chastisement_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o come_v of_o jesus_n in_o glory_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v all_o together_o she_o say_v sir_n they_o be_v very_o much_o deceive_v for_o these_o be_v all_o divers_a thing_n which_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v at_o different_a time_n for_o first_o of_o all_o the_o judgement_n be_v when_o god_n see_v the_o universal_a iniquity_n of_o all_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o know_v and_o love_v he_o he_o by_o straight_a justice_n judge_v and_o condemn_v the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o may_v not_o surprise_v any_o 9_o he_o delay_v the_o execution_n of_o his_o sentence_n that_o man_n may_v discover_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o world_n be_v judge_v see_v the_o evil_n to_o increase_v and_o people_n amendment_n desperate_a this_o be_v the_o great_a evidence_n to_o verify_v that_o the_o sentence_n be_v irrevocable_a god_n do_v this_o that_o man_n remark_v these_o truth_n may_v quake_v for_o fear_n and_o be_v convert_v unto_o he_o that_o they_o may_v obtain_v his_o mercy_n at_o least_o every_o one_o for_o their_o own_o particular_a i_o believe_v sir_n that_o these_o thirty_o year_n the_o world_n be_v judge_v and_o condemn_v and_o that_o now_o the_o
prayer_n he_o himself_o fast_v forty_o day_n in_o the_o desert_n and_o be_v a_o hunger_a but_o these_o reformer_n speak_v of_o nothing_o but_o fill_v their_o belly_n well_o the_o better_a to_o excite_v their_o lust_n be_v not_o these_o who_o will_v reform_v the_o roman_a church_n fine_a zealot_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o see_v also_o that_o all_o their_o reformation_n have_v bring_v nothing_o but_o schism_n and_o division_n among_o the_o reform_a themselves_o there_o be_v nothing_o there_o but_o debate_n and_o dissension_n they_o write_v to_o i_o some_o while_n ago_o that_o two_o preacher_n of_o the_o same_o reform_a communion_n have_v fall_v by_o the_o ear_n together_o even_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o one_o have_v rend_v the_o other_o garment_n from_o head_n to_o foot_n these_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o their_o reformation_n and_o of_o the_o remedy_n they_o say_v they_o have_v provide_v for_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o tree_n be_v know_v by_o its_o fruit._n from_o whence_o we_o may_v infer_v how_o pernicious_a these_o reformation_n must_v be_v which_o have_v cause_v such_o mischief_n in_o christendom_n have_v bring_v in_o nothing_o but_o hatred_n among_o christian_n though_o jesus_n christ_n do_v so_o much_o recommend_v to_o they_o to_o love_v one_o another_o by_o these_o reformation_n they_o have_v despise_v hate_a and_o persecute_a one_o another_o beat_z robe_v kill_v and_o murder_a one_o another_o without_o compassion_n to_o maintain_v the_o opinion_n that_o they_o have_v undertake_v to_o believe_v though_o all_o their_o opinion_n be_v equal_o bad_a the_o one_o err_v one_o way_n and_o the_o other_o another_o so_o that_o to_o maintain_v the_o error_n of_o these_o reformer_n these_o christian_n kill_v and_o murder_v one_o another_o instead_o of_o love_v one_o another_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o these_o enmity_n continue_v to_o this_o day_n and_o they_o hate_v and_o despise_v one_o another_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o religion_n though_o all_o of_o they_o signify_v nothing_o and_o no_o religion_n can_v save_v any_o nothing_o but_o the_o love_n of_o god_n bring_v salvation_n and_o all_o these_o person_n love_v themselves_o only_o and_o live_v all_o according_a to_o the_o motion_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n their_o religion_n consist_v in_o nothing_o but_o theory_n and_o vain_a speculation_n not_o at_o all_o in_o practice_n but_o to_o flatter_v they_o with_o some_o piety_n and_o devotion_n their_o reformer_n have_v put_v the_o bible_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o some_o song_n to_o sing_v in_o the_o temple_n since_o the_o priest_n and_o religious_a romanist_n use_v to_o sing_v in_o the_o temple_n and_o corrupt_a nature_n have_v no_o repugnance_n to_o song_n it_o rather_o delight_v in_o they_o as_o all_o these_o reformer_n do_v at_o this_o day_n who_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v to_o make_v their_o good_a voice_n be_v hear_v in_o the_o temple_n where_o they_o sit_v at_o their_o own_o ease_n with_o the_o bible_n in_o their_o hand_n on_o which_o they_o profess_v to_o read_v that_o they_o may_v learn_v to_o discourse_v of_o it_o though_o i_o have_v not_o know_v one_o person_n who_o put_v in_o practice_n so_o much_o as_o one_o point_n of_o the_o gospel_n lo_o this_o be_v all_o the_o service_n that_o these_o reformer_n have_v learn_v their_o disciple_n together_o with_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o be_v perform_v without_o devotion_n or_o piety_n and_o notwithstanding_o of_o this_o they_o call_v themselves_o good_a christian_n evangelical_n person_n predestinate_v or_o regenerate_v one_o and_o other_o good_a name_n though_o they_o be_v as_o far_o from_o salvation_n as_o heaven_n be_v from_o earth_n but_o these_o reformer_n have_v know_v so_o well_o how_o to_o persuade_v they_o of_o a_o imaginary_a salvation_n by_o their_o scholastic_a reason_n and_o gloss_n that_o they_o have_v thereby_o so_o confound_v their_o spirit_n as_o that_o they_o receive_v lie_n for_o the_o gospel_n that_o which_o be_v most_o to_o be_v admire_v be_v that_o among_o so_o many_o person_n of_o understanding_n who_o have_v follow_v these_o reformer_n none_o have_v perceive_v the_o cheat_n of_o these_o sensual_a reformer_n who_o teach_v a_o life_n quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o evangelical_n life_n which_o speak_v of_o nothing_o but_o deny_v a_o man_n self_n bear_v down_o his_o flesh_n and_o do_v penitence_n with_o a_o threaten_v that_o without_o this_o mean_a we_o shall_v all_o perish_v it_o must_v indeed_o be_v say_v that_o from_o that_o time_n man_n have_v be_v abandon_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o lie_v and_o that_o man_n spirit_n have_v be_v quite_o blind_v by_o sin_n and_o be_v since_o still_o more_o blind_v since_o yet_o in_o our_o time_n we_o see_v person_n of_o a_o like_a temper_n li●t_v up_o themselves_o above_o other_o and_o call_v themselves_o the_o reformer_n and_o restorer_n of_o israel_n and_o separate_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o reform_a that_o they_o may_v live_v separate_a from_o the_o world_n in_o great_a holiness_n than_o other_o though_o in_o their_o manner_n they_o be_v as_o sensual_a yea_o more_o than_o those_o who_o they_o have_v forsake_v for_o have_v no_o accommodation_n of_o worldly_a good_n and_o be_v unwilling_a to_o work_n but_o desirous_a to_o be_v well_o treat_v and_o serve_v they_o undertake_v reformation_n draw_v over_o to_o they_o wealthy_a person_n that_o they_o may_v obtain_v their_o aim_n and_o they_o make_v all_o their_o good_n common_a in_o which_o the_o poor_a can_v but_o have_v advantage_n and_o the_o reformer_n service_n and_o a_o good_a time_n of_o it_o according_a to_o their_o aim_n since_o in_o effect_v many_o follow_v they_o and_o give_v they_o all_o their_o wealth_n with_o which_o they_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o marry_v as_o those_o do_v in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n on_o which_o term_n they_o make_v they_o preach_n of_o fine_a study_a word_n and_o fit_v for_o the_o gust_n of_o the_o hearer_n who_o be_v well_o please_v to_o have_v find_v out_o a_o way_n of_o salvation_n so_o well_o accommodate_v to_o their_o corrupt_a nature_n since_o they_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v all_o rule_v by_o king_n jesus_n they_o be_v persuade_v by_o their_o frivolous_a discourse_n that_o this_o be_v true_a and_o thus_o man_n be_v yet_o amuse_v by_o man_n as_o they_o be_v in_o former_a time_n and_o i_o can_v see_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o that_o god_n overturn_v all_o these_o church_n make_v with_o man_n hand_n that_o he_o may_v establish_v one_o make_v of_o spirit_n and_o of_o life_n where_o we_o shall_v worship_v god_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n which_o he_o make_v i_o hope_n shall_v come_v to_o pass_v very_o short_o since_o he_o make_v i_o declare_v so_o many_o truth_n with_o the_o hazard_n of_o my_o life_n to_o overturn_v babel_n and_o revive_v true_a christianity_n bless_v shall_v he_o be_v who_o shall_v receive_v they_o from_o god_n hand_n and_o shall_v not_o resist_v the_o truth_n as_o janne_n and_o jambres_n do_v since_o these_o be_v undo_v for_o ever_o but_o receive_v the_o save_a truth_n that_o god_n have_v communicate_v to_o i_o in_o this_o light_n of_o the_o world_n which_o will_v illuminate_v you●_n soul_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o remain_v friendly_a reader_n your_o very_a affectionate_a in_o jesus_n christ_n anthoinette_n bourignon_fw-fr the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o three_o part._n the_o first_o conference_n declare_v that_o god_n have_v never_o demand_v any_o other_o thing_n of_o man_n but_o the_o dependence_n of_o his_o will_n on_o god_n and_o that_o all_o other_o law_n be_v give_v he_o by_o accident_n and_o to_o discover_v his_o sin_n have_v be_v absent_a for_o some_o time_n from_o this_o illuminate_v soul_n i_o go_v to_o find_v she_o again_o to_o entreat_v she_o to_o pray_v for_o i_o and_o to_o tell_v she_o i_o be_v resolve_v more_o than_o ever_o to_o resign_v myself_o whole_o to_o god_n that_o i_o may_v receive_v his_o divine_a light_n she_o say_v sir_n as_o soon_o as_o you_o shall_v make_v this_o resignation_n of_o yourself_o and_o shall_v deliver_v up_o into_o god_n hand_n the_o freewill_n that_o he_o have_v give_v you_o you_o shall_v receive_v the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o will_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n but_o never_o turn_v back_o again_o to_o resume_v your_o own_o will_n otherwise_o the_o last_o fault_n will_v be_v worse_o than_o the_o first_o since_o you_o have_v now_o receive_v more_o light_n than_o former_o walk_v according_a to_o it_o and_o do_v not_o any_o more_o regard_v the_o world_n nor_o the_o creature_n for_o they_o can_v save_v you_o you_o must_v fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n 12._o whether_o you_o will_v or_o no_o no_o body_n can_v escape_v this_o whether_o he_o live_v well_o or_o
a_o man_n must_v deny_v himself_o by_o which_o word_n he_o explain_v to_o we_o what_o this_o dependence_n on_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v for_o the_o whole_a law_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o dependence_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v on_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o when_o he_o say_v deny_v yourselves_o this_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o say_v resign_v yourselves_o to_o god_n because_o he_o who_o follow_v himself_o hinder_v god_n from_o rule_v over_o he_o so_o all_o the_o other_o precept_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v but_o to_o point_n out_o to_o we_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o this_o resignation_n of_o our_o will_n to_o god_n for_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v 33._o renounce_v all_o that_o you_o possess_v this_o be_v not_o that_o god_n have_v need_n of_o silver_n or_o other_o possession_n but_o because_o man_n have_v so_o set_v his_o affection_n on_o what_o he_o possess_v in_o this_o world_n that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v content_a that_o god_n shall_v take_v they_o from_o he_o and_o as_o long_o as_o he_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o possess_v they_o he_o can_v be_v resign_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n for_o he_o have_v yet_o his_o own_o and_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v 33._o take_v up_o your_o cross_n and_o follow_v i_o this_o be_v also_o to_o lead_v we_o to_o this_o resignation_n of_o our_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n for_o be_v all_o good_a he_o can_v do_v evil_a to_o any_o nor_o take_v pleasure_n in_o make_v we_o suffer_v but_o he_o who_o will_v not_o endure_v the_o pain_n and_o cross_n that_o shall_v befall_v he_o can_v be_v resign_v to_o god_n for_o he_o do_v not_o willing_o suffer_v though_o his_o sin_n have_v deserve_v it_o and_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v that_o we_o must_v 29._o cut_v off_o the_o foot_n or_o pluck_v out_o the_o eye_n that_o offend_v we_o it_o be_v not_o that_o god_n have_v need_n of_o any_o of_o the_o member_n of_o our_o body_n but_o to_o teach_v we_o that_o he_o who_o be_v resign_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n ought_v willing_o to_o lose_v his_o foot_n or_o his_o eye_n yea_o his_o life_n when_o god_n shall_v permit_v it_o for_o he_o who_o have_v resign_v his_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n have_v no_o more_o any_o care_n of_o or_o respect_n to_o himself_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v entire_o govern_v by_o god_n independent_o from_o his_o own_o will._n and_o because_o we_o do_v not_o comprehend_v sufficient_o how_o this_o dependence_n ought_v to_o be_v and_o be_v so_o far_o remove_v from_o it_o jesus_n christ_n come_v upon_o earth_n to_o explain_v to_o we_o by_o what_o mean_v we_o ought_v to_o recover_v it_o for_o all_o his_o precept_n be_v only_a mean_n to_o attain_v to_o it_o i_o ask_v she_o how_o we_o may_v know_v when_o we_o be_v whole_o refi_n n_v to_o god_n and_o that_o our_o liberty_n and_o freewill_n be_v yield_v up_o to_o his_o disposal_n she_o say_v sir_n it_o be_v very_o easy_a to_o know_v this_o for_o he_o who_o have_v true_o yield_v up_o his_o freewill_n to_o god_n will_v use_v it_o 39_o no_o more_o but_o deny_v all_o that_o it_o demand_n even_o to_o the_o least_o thing_n he_o yield_v no_o long_o to_o it_o in_o any_o thing_n but_o wait_v on_o god_n for_o all_o that_o he_o must_v have_v have_v no_o more_o to_o yield_v up_o to_o he_o but_o this_o freewill_n he_o only_o receive_v from_o god_n without_o act_v in_o any_o thing_n such_o a_o person_n perform_v all_o his_o action_n in_o dependence_n on_o god_n if_o he_o eat_v and_o drink_v it_o be_v nothing_o but_o out_o of_o pure_a necessity_n without_o regard_v whether_o it_o be_v sweet_a or_o sour_a all_o be_v good_a to_o he_o provide_v it_o be_v wholesome_a and_o sufficient_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o life_n he_o seek_v neither_o ease_n pleasure_n honour_n riches_n nor_o any_o earthly_a contentment_n and_o if_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n occur_v he_o take_v they_o indifferent_o from_o god_n hand_n for_o he_o have_v no_o long_o any_o desire_n of_o his_o own_o he_o neither_o desire_v honour_n estate_n riches_n nor_o any_o thing_n that_o delight_v the_o mind_n know_v well_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o this_o life_n that_o one_o must_v take_v his_o contentment_n no_o more_o than_o jesus_n christ_n do_v while_o he_o be_v on_o earth_n on_o the_o contrary_a he_o find_v in_o his_o soul_n a_o willingness_n 10._o to_o suffer_v reproach_n pain_n and_o labour_n though_o contrary_a to_o his_o natural_a inclination_n a_o soul_n dead_a to_o itself_o and_o resign_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n neither_o seek_v good_a nor_o even_a virtue_n but_o those_o which_o god_n will_v give_v it_o and_o affect_v no_o mean_n to_o obtain_v they_o but_o be_v well_o content_v to_o be_v most_o ignorant_a and_o strip_v of_o all_o sort_n of_o science_n and_o mean_n even_o of_o perfection_n in_o one_o word_n sir_n a_o person_n who_o have_v yield_v up_o his_o free_a will_n to_o god_n desire_v no_o long_o any_o thing_n on_o earth_n and_o expect_v only_o what_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o permit_v or_o send_v he_o receive_v prosperity_n and_o adversity_n with_o a_o even_a mind_n without_o joy_n or_o grief_n since_o he_o believe_v that_o 28._o god_n will_v not_o permit_v any_o thing_n to_o befall_v he_o but_o what_o shall_v turn_v to_o his_o good_a all_o these_o be_v sign_n to_o know_v whether_o we_o be_v resign_v to_o god_n or_o not_o for_o we_o must_v not_o flatter_v ourselves_o in_o say_v that_o we_o be_v resign_v to_o god_n while_o we_o live_v whole_o to_o our_o own_o will_n and_o follow_v as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v our_o own_o inclination_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o i_o never_o know_v any_o on_o earth_n who_o be_v so_o resign_v to_o god_n as_o to_o take_v all_o from_o his_o hand_n and_o to_o have_v no_o self-will_n on_o occasion_n though_o many_o pretend_v that_o they_o will_v live_v whole_o to_o god_n and_o do_v his_o will_n she_o say_v sir_n do_v you_o not_o see_v that_o these_o be_v all_o cheat_n and_o that_o those_o who_o say_v they_o will_v please_v god_n and_o do_v his_o will_n deceive_v themselves_o in_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v please_v with_o their_o word_n without_o effect_n if_o you_o never_o know_v any_o person_n who_o yield_v up_o to_o god_n the_o free_a will_n that_o he_o give_v he_o you_o may_v well_o say_v that_o you_o know_v none_o in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n for_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v 4._o who_o follow_v his_o own_o will_n for_o adam_n commit_v no_o other_o sin_n to_o undo_v we_o but_o the_o follow_v his_o own_o will_n the_o matter_n of_o eat_v a_o apple_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o cause_v all_o the_o misery_n under_o which_o we_o yet_o groan_v that_o which_o ruine_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o 13._o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v content_v with_o the_o government_n and_o will_n of_o god_n desire_v rather_o to_o suffer_v the_o misery_n of_o egypt_n in_o do_v their_o own_o will_n than_o to_o enjoy_v the_o delight_n they_o have_v while_o they_o resign_v themselves_o too_o god_n when_o all_o the_o world-perished_a by_o a_o universal_a deluge_n it_o be_v because_o every_o one_o be_v more_o bend_v to_o follow_v his_o own_o will_n than_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o word_n that_o god_n proclaim_v by_o noah_n and_o when_o the_o jew_n be_v give_v up_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n it_o be_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o that_o they_o value_v more_o their_o own_o will_n than_o the_o light_n that_o god_n send_v they_o to_o receive_v and_o know_v his._n by_o which_o we_o may_v see_v that_o in_o all_o time_n and_o age_n god_n have_v always_o demand_v the_o submission_n of_o man_n will_n to_o his_o own_o and_o have_v reject_v all_o those_o who_o follow_v their_o own_o will._n do_v you_o believe_v sir_n that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v thus_o with_o christian_n and_o all_o the_o world_n now_o it_o be_v certain_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n for_o god_n never_o change_v what_o he_o require_v from_o adam_n he_o certain_o require_v from_o all_o his_o posterity_n we_o be_v mistake_v if_o we_o think_v to_o deceive_v he_o now_o with_o formal_a word_n and_o discourse_n say_v that_o we_o will_v be_v resign_v to_o he_o and_o do_v his_o will_n when_o in_o effect_n we_o will_v only_o follow_v our_o own_o on_o all_o occasion_n this_o be_v one_o deceit_n among_o other_o which_o be_v creep_v into_o christendom_n to_o make_v all_o the_o world_n perish_v for_o no_o body_n know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v resign_v to_o god_n while_o every_o one_o say_v he_o be_v and_o on_o this_o false_a persuasion_n they_o insensible_o destroy_v
their_o innocence_n but_o if_o they_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n when_o grow_v up_o it_o will_v be_v infamous_a because_o of_o the_o malignity_n of_o their_o thought_n a_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o itself_o the_o same_o be_v render_v good_a or_o evil_n by_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o sin_n that_o be_v commit_v in_o marriage_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o its_o be_v evil_a in_o its_o self_n for_o it_o be_v good_a but_o they_o be_v introduce_v there_o through_o the_o perverse_a will_n of_o man_n even_o as_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a in_o itself_o but_o man_n perverse_a will_n have_v render_v it_o abominable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o they_o have_v change_v the_o order_n into_o which_o god_n have_v establish_v it_o and_o if_o man_n commit_v the_o great_a sin_n by_o the_o inclination_n they_o have_v to_o this_o natural_a conjunction_n this_o proceed_v from_o nothing_o but_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o heart_n since_o the_o thing_n in_o itself_o be_v good_a and_o holy_a if_o man_n be_v become_v so_o negligent_a as_o to_o abuse_v all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v it_o not_o through_o his_o own_o wickedness_n that_o he_o perish_v though_o he_o lay_v the_o blame_n always_o on_o god_n for_o if_o he_o sin_n through_o carnal_a lust_n he_o will_v say_v wherefore_o have_v god_n give_v i_o this_o natural_a inclination_n by_o which_o i_o be_o lead_v to_o sin_n and_o if_o man_n be_v chastise_v by_o any_o rod_n they_o will_v say_v that_o god_n afflict_v they_o or_o that_o he_o have_v forsake_v they_o and_o so_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n how_o great_a soever_o man_n wickedness_n be_v they_o lay_v the_o blame_n always_o on_o god_n though_o they_o do_v not_o say_v it_o by_o word_n yet_o they_o do_v it_o in_o deed_n while_o they_o neglect_v to_o discover_v that_o all_o his_o work_n be_v still_o 10._o accompany_v with_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n and_o that_o nothing_o that_o be_v evil_a can_v ever_o come_v from_o god_n who_o be_v the_o 17._o source_n and_o original_a of_o all_o good_a still_o do_v good_a to_o all_o without_o except_v any_o by_o which_o we_o see_v evident_o that_o he_o be_v no_o long_o know_v at_o present_a for_o they_o abuse_v all_o his_o favour_n and_o blaspheme_v he_o in_o every_o thing_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o confess_v it_o for_o every_o one_o of_o these_o christian_n have_v it_o in_o their_o mouth_n that_o they_o love_v god_n and_o honour_n he_o 16._o while_o true_o and_o in_o effect_n they_o disow_v and_o blaspheme_v he_o by_o their_o work_n the_o four_o conference_n of_o the_o blindness_n of_o man_n who_o amuse_n themselves_o with_o the_o outward_a thing_n which_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o without_o search_v into_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o truth_n itself_o they_o be_v so_o infatuate_v and_o withhold_v through_o the_o fear_n of_o displease_v those_o who_o be_v in_o reputation_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o man_n be_v in_o horrible_a darkness_n and_o that_o the_o truth_n be_v no_o long_o know_v but_o every_o one_o have_v for_o saken_a it_o and_o take_v a_o quite_o contrary_a way_n while_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o think_v they_o be_v in_o the_o right_a way_n she_o say_v sir_n this_o be_v what_o i_o bewail_v continual_o to_o see_v man_n so_o far_o from_o their_o salvation_n and_o yet_o they_o think_v they_o be_v in_o the_o right_a way_n to_o it_o this_o cause_v the_o damnation_n of_o those_o who_o be_v esteem_v the_o best_a man_n for_o while_o they_o think_v they_o be_v good_a they_o will_v not_o endeavour_v after_o a_o change_n but_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o a_o presumption_n of_o be_v save_v without_o good_a work_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o other_o and_o no_o body_n think_v on_o it_o for_o the_o darkness_n be_v so_o thick_a that_o they_o can_v see_v whither_o they_o go_v truth_n be_v always_o bright_a and_o discover_v every_o thing_n but_o it_o be_v no_o long_o know_v no_o body_n know_v the_o truth_n any_o more_o since_o the_o devil_n spread_v this_o horrible_a darkness_n on_o the_o earth_n but_o every_o one_o walk_n in_o darkness_n and_o believe_v he_o be_v in_o the_o right_a way_n and_o while_o they_o be_v perish_v they_o think_v to_o be_v save_v have_v you_o not_o observe_v sir_n all_o that_o i_o have_v say_v to_o you_o that_o man_n know_v not_o god_n any_o long_o nor_o his_o work_n and_o that_o they_o understand_v they_o in_o a_o quite_o contrary_a sense_n and_o that_o in_o truth_n they_o observe_v nothing_o of_o what_o god_n have_v command_v and_o jesus_n christ_n teach_v and_o yet_o every_o one_o say_v that_o he_o desire_v to_o come_v to_o god_n must_v there_o not_o be_v a_o lie_n in_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o of_o these_o two_o contrary_a thing_n for_o what_o i_o say_v and_o what_o man_n do_v be_v as_o distant_a from_o one_o another_o as_o heat_n be_v from_o cold_a nevertheless_o truth_n can_v change_v it_o remain_v always_o true_a let_v man_n say_v what_o they_o please_v let_v they_o stray_v from_o it_o or_o approach_v it_o it_o abide_v still_o firm_a in_o its_o integrity_n who_o that_o understand_v i_o aright_o can_v doubt_v that_o i_o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o if_o you_o be_v oblige_v to_o confess_v it_o will_v you_o not_o consequent_o be_v oblige_v to_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o the_o world_n be_v deceive_v and_o fall_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o in_o forsake_v it_o they_o have_v forsake_v god_n and_o if_o they_o have_v forsake_v god_n who_o can_v uphold_v they_o any_o long_o the_o world_n must_v certain_o perish_v for_o its_o disease_n be_v at_o the_o height_n and_o the_o worst_a of_o all_o be_v that_o they_o do_v not_o know_v it_o for_o if_o they_o know_v it_o there_o will_v yet_o be_v some_o among_o they_o who_o will_v open_v their_o eye_n and_o perceive_v the_o reality_n of_o truth_n i_o ask_v she_o from_o whence_o this_o great_a blindness_n of_o spirit_n and_o this_o so_o obscure_a darkness_n can_v proceed_v she_o say_v sir_n this_o come_v from_o the_o devil_n since_o he_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n and_o begin_v to_o countermine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o take_v the_o title_n of_o antichrist_n he_o have_v labour_v so_o strong_o in_o this_o that_o he_o have_v spread_v among_o they_o a_o universal_a darkness_n and_o so_o confound_v the_o spirit_n of_o those_o christian_n with_o so_o many_o different_a thing_n that_o they_o be_v no_o long_o capable_a of_o know_v the_o truth_n instead_o of_o it_o he_o have_v inspire_v they_o with_o a_o great_a many_o false_a opinion_n that_o he_o may_v divert_v they_o from_o the_o pure_a truth_n so_o that_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v there_o be_v any_o sect_n or_o nation_n in_o the_o world_n far_o from_o it_o than_o the_o christian_n of_o this_o age_n because_o they_o discover_v it_o no_o long_o in_o any_o thing_n whereas_o the_o heretic_n jew_n or_o heathen_n know_v the_o truth_n in_o some_o thing_n though_o in_o other_o they_o be_v mistake_v but_o these_o christian_n be_v mistake_v in_o all_o through_o the_o ill_a use_n they_o make_v of_o all_o thing_n as_o i_o have_v former_o tell_v you_o sir_n that_o they_o know_v neither_o god_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o work_n judge_v of_o all_o in_o a_o quite_o contrary_a sense_n and_o because_o they_o can_v not_o have_v quiet_a without_o do_v good_a thing_n the_o devil_n have_v furnish_v they_o with_o so_o many_o seem_o good_a work_n that_o they_o have_v no_o long_o any_o leisure_n to_o think_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o examine_v whether_o these_o new_a devotion_n be_v true_a or_o not_o but_o they_o blind_o follow_v they_o without_o make_v any_o other_o reflection_n but_o that_o they_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o church_n without_o examine_v also_o whether_o this_o church_n be_v holy_a or_o not_o they_o lay_v aside_o the_o truth_n to_o receive_v that_o which_o be_v propose_v to_o they_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v a_o good_a thing_n hence_o 12._o there_o be_v such_o blindness_n of_o spirit_n and_o such_o obscure_a darkness_n that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o way_n to_o make_v they_o see_v the_o truth_n their_o understanding_n be_v so_o preoccupy_v and_o darken_v with_o diverse_a thing_n that_o they_o can_v no_o long_o consider_v the_o unity_n of_o truth_n on_o the_o contrary_a they_o will_v think_v they_o do_v evil_a to_o follow_v this_o truth_n and_o quit_v the_o new_a practice_n introduce_v by_o man_n so_o that_o if_o we_o shall_v advise_v a_o christian_a now_o a-days_o to_o do_v nothing_o else_o in_o order_n to_o his_o salvation_n but_o to_o resign_v his_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n he_o will_v think_v we_o design_v to_o make_v he_o a_o heretic_n and_o will_v cleave_v more_o firm_o to_o the_o
abuse_v we_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n we_o must_v no_o long_o trust_v in_o any_o body_n for_o all_o have_v leave_v and_o forsake_v their_o god_n though_o some_o remain_v still_o in_o the_o faith_n nevertheless_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o jew_n with_o faith_n have_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o christian_n have_v no_o more_o faith_n and_o shall_v not_o recover_v it_o since_o jesus_n christ_n say_v 8._o that_o at_o his_o come_n he_o shall_v not_o find_v faith_n in_o israel_n they_o be_v of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o nevertheless_o have_v deny_v his_o faith_n and_o give_v it_o to_o man_n only_o i_o ask_v she_o to_o what_o place_n i_o ought_v to_o flee_v since_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v judge_v and_o the_o plague_n will_v be_v universal_a that_o i_o may_v put_v myself_o in_o great_a danger_n in_o the_o place_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v flee_v than_o in_o that_o which_o i_o have_v leave_v she_o say_v flee_v first_o out_o of_o the_o dominion_n of_o rome_n sir_n for_o that_o place_n will_v be_v first_o of_o all_o destroy_v god_n order_v all_o his_o affair_n with_o judgement_n 37._o weight_n 21._o and_o measure_n he_o will_v visit_v first_o of_o all_o those_o who_o have_v most_o offend_v he_o justice_n regulate_v all_o thing_n and_o because_o christian_n have_v more_o treacheroust_o offend_v he_o than_o any_o other_o they_o have_v draw_v on_o themselves_o the_o first_o vengeance_n all_o other_o will_v follow_v the_o order_n 9_o of_o their_o iniquity_n as_o they_o grow_v worse_o in_o wickedness_n according_o they_o shall_v be_v near_o their_o punishment_n it_o be_v fit_a always_o to_o retire_v into_o place_n where_o the_o abomination_n be_v less_o there_o the_o chastisement_n will_v be_v less_o though_o 18_o indeed_o no_o place_n shall_v be_v exempt_v from_o plague_n because_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v deserve_v they_o nevertheless_o they_o shall_v be_v inflict_v only_o according_a 6._o as_o every_o one_o have_v merit_v and_o deserve_v they_o and_o no_o further_o for_o sin_n beget_v 19_o misery_n and_o they_o proceed_v not_o from_o god_n as_o they_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v because_o no_o evil_n come_v from_o god_n who_o alone_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o good_a so_o that_o all_o the_o good_a that_o we_o see_v and_o feel_v come_v always_o from_o god_n and_o all_o the_o evil_a that_o we_o see_v and_o feel_v come_v always_o from_o sin_n and_o as_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n continual_o bring_v forth_o good_a thing_n so_o the_o malignity_n of_o sin_n continual_o bring_v forth_o evil_a thing_n and_o 5._o as_o sin_n increase_v evil_n increase_v the_o more_o hence_o it_o come_v that_o the_o plague_n be_v universal_a because_o the_o sin_n be_v so_o for_o as_o long_o as_o there_o be_v place_n where_o god_n be_v yet_o honour_v on_o earth_n he_o bear_v with_o other_o wait_v for_o their_o repentance_n and_o the_o universal_a plague_n shall_v not_o fall_v out_o so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v any_o who_o have_v not_o deserve_v they_o for_o god_n be_v too_o just_a to_o afflict_v 25._o a_o righteous_a person_n or_o to_o chastise_v one_o that_o be_v innocent_a that_o be_v but_o the_o manner_n of_o unrighteous_a man_n but_o god_n always_o exercise_v righteousness_n both_o as_o to_o the_o good_a and_o to_o the_o evil_n however_o man_n imagine_v that_o god_n send_v his_o plague_n they_o be_v deceive_v for_o nothing_o but_o sin_n can_v bring_v they_o on_o and_o produce_v they_o according_a as_o man_n offend_v their_o evil_n increase_v i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o these_o be_v most_o excellent_a truth_n that_o no_o evil_n can_v come_v from_o god_n and_o that_o nevertheless_o nobody_o do_v comprehend_v this_o she_o say_v sir_n the_o reason_n be_v man_n do_v not_o know_v the_o righteousness_n the_o goodness_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n but_o they_o judge_v blind_o of_o all_o they_o see_v according_a to_o their_o passion_n if_o they_o know_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n they_o can_v never_o think_v of_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v keep_v off_o his_o last_o plaguc_n 9_o for_o they_o will_v see_v that_o they_o will_v never_o fall_v out_o but_o when_o sin_n shall_v be_v universal_a because_o god_n be_v perfect_o righteous_a but_o because_o we_o do_v not_o conceive_v this_o righteousness_n we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v yet_o many_o good_a man_n in_o the_o world_n because_o they_o seem_v so_o to_o we_o in_o this_o we_o give_v a_o tacit_a reproof_n to_o god_n for_o if_o our_o belief_n be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v yet_o at_o present_a so_o many_o good_a man_n in_o the_o world_n as_o we_o be_v persuade_v there_o be_v god_n will_v be_v unjust_a to_o send_v on_o we_o so_o many_o different_a misery_n as_o we_o feel_v at_o present_a if_o he_o will_v have_v forgive_v they_o in_o abraham_n time_n provide_v 30._o he_o can_v have_v show_v he_o but_o ten_o righteous_a person_n yea_o even_o few_o how_o can_v he_o chastise_v the_o world_n now_o if_o there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o number_n in_o it_o as_o we_o believe_v there_o be_v be_v he_o not_o the_o same_o god_n still_o and_o have_v he_o not_o the_o same_o goodness_n since_o he_o can_v change_v true_o sir_n man_n mistake_v god_n in_o every_o thing_n and_o through_o this_o mistake_n they_o utter_v reproach_n against_o he_o and_o blaspheme_v against_o his_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n particular_o christian_n who_o with_o their_o seem_a piety_n lie_v the_o blame_n on_o god_n of_o all_o their_o mis-deed_n be_v not_o this_o horrible_a darkness_n since_o they_o choose_v rather_o to_o charge_n god_n with_o their_o fault_n than_o discover_v they_o by_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v repent_v of_o they_o true_o sir_n the_o power_n of_o darkness_n be_v great_a that_o it_o can_v so_o obscure_v all_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n that_o no_o body_n know_v the_o truth_n any_o long_o and_o even_o the_o most_o part_n shut_v their_o eye_n that_o they_o may_v not_o discover_v it_o and_o in_o so_o do_v they_o think_v they_o do_v well_o the_o egyptian_a darkness_n be_v far_o less_o dangerous_a for_o it_o be_v feel_v and_o they_o dare_v not_o stir_v 23._o out_o of_o the_o place_n for_o fear_v of_o fall_v but_o those_o christian_n now_o do_v not_o perceive_v their_o darkness_n or_o their_o error_n on_o the_o contrary_n 7._o they_o think_v they_o be_v in_o the_o light_n and_o condemn_v other_o who_o see_v more_o clear_o than_o themselves_o by_o what_o mean_n shall_v the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v save_v when_o they_o take_v lie_v for_o truth_n which_o they_o reject_v as_o a_o evil_a thing_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o nevertheless_o truth_n be_v a_o very_a lovely_a thing_n and_o as_o for_o myself_o i_o will_v follow_v it_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v discover_v it_o she_o say_v you_o will_v discover_v it_o sufficient_o if_o you_o love_v it_o for_o the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o be_v now_o bear_v into_o the_o world_n will_v discover_v it_o to_o all_o those_o who_o shall_v search_v for_o it_o but_o there_o be_v few_o among_o the_o christian_n who_o will_v receive_v it_o though_o it_o offer_v itself_o first_o of_o all_o to_o their_o eye_n because_o they_o be_v so_o full_a of_o error_n and_o superstition_n that_o they_o will_v not_o make_v way_n for_o 17._o this_o truth_n which_o be_v lovely_a they_o live_v in_o a_o presumption_n of_o their_o salvation_n yea_o they_o condemn_v all_o the_o world_n to_o damnation_n because_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v their_o law_n though_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o be_v but_o humane_a and_o no_o way_n divine_a law_n and_o whereas_o god_n say_v 5._o that_o he_o resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a he_o who_o be_v truth_n 6._o will_v resist_v they_o even_o as_o they_o resist_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v god_n but_o if_o for_o your_o part_n sir_n you_o do_v it_o and_o will_v follow_v it_o you_o shall_v obtain_v the_o happiness_n of_o reign_v with_o jesus_n christ_n in_o glory_n but_o without_o faith_n you_o can_v be_v save_v for_o if_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o the_o world_n be_v judge_v you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n because_o the_o deportment_n of_o man_n be_v a_o certain_a evidence_n of_o it_o since_o we_o see_v they_o without_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n and_o if_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o we_o live_v now_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n you_o will_v assure_o be_v deceive_v for_o under_o the_o covert_n of_o holiness_n he_o will_v deceive_v the_o elect_n 24._o if_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o if_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v
of_o all_o honour_n which_o than_o all_o the_o world_n will_v render_v to_o he_o 24_o and_o just_o to_o render_v complete_a justice_n to_o every_o one_o 18._o there_o be_v so_o many_o innocent_a person_n afflict_v and_o saint_n unknown_a and_o despise_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n there_o be_v so_o many_o wicked_a man_n honour_v raise_v to_o place_n and_o honour_n and_o even_o hold_v for_o saint_n all_o these_o be_v dead_a and_o the_o truth_n as_o to_o they_o undiscovered_a must_v not_o god_n avenge_v the_o quarrel_n of_o the_o good_a and_o make_v appear_v the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o he_o may_v be_v just_o good_a and_o true_a i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o every_o one_o look_v for_o these_o reparation_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o general_a judgement_n which_o must_v be_v do_v in_o a_o little_a time_n or_o sudden_o where_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v recompense_v in_o heaven_n according_a to_o his_o merit_n or_o suffering_n she_o say_v sir_n they_o will_v make_v god_n a_o god_n of_o confusion_n what_o appearance_n be_v there_o that_o this_o judgement_n can_v pass_v in_o a_o day_n or_o sudden_o since_o the_o whole_a world_n must_v appear_v there_o it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a that_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o enchantment_n be_v transport_v to_o the_o same_o place_n in_o a_o instant_n who_o can_v hear_v in_o that_o crowd_n the_o justification_n of_o the_o righteous_a if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v do_v only_o by_o word_n they_o will_v not_o hear_v one_o by_o reason_n of_o another_o and_o if_o every_o one_o in_o particular_a must_v be_v speak_v to_o to_o declare_v his_o good_a or_o evil_a deed_n it_o will_v need_v a_o long_a time_n before_o all_o be_v repair_v year_n will_v not_o suffice_v to_o judge_n so_o many_o man_n as_o have_v be_v upon_o the_o earth_n true_o sir_n all_o the_o speculation_n of_o man_n be_v nothing_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o chimera_n in_o the_o air._n god_n take_v six_o day_n 1._o to_o create_v the_o world_n deliberate_o and_o in_o order_n as_o he_o have_v do_v all_o his_o work_n by_o weight_n 21_o and_o measure_n without_o any_o disorder_n or_o confusion_n he_o make_v noah_n prepare_v a_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o 14._o deluge_n and_o when_o it_o come_v it_o begin_v to_o rain_v which_o rain_n last_v 14._o forty_o day_n the_o plague_n be_v now_o begin_v and_o will_v follow_v in_o order_n even_o to_o their_o end_n and_o the_o judgement_n will_v also_o go_v on_o in_o order_n so_o deliberate_o that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o least_o confusion_n in_o it_o for_o that_o can_v come_v only_o from_o man_n and_o not_o from_o god_n who_o do_v all_o in_o order_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o imaginary_a heaven_n as_o people_n fancy_v it_o where_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v reward_v or_o restore_v for_o heaven_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n who_o contain_v all_o thing_n and_o can_v be_v contain_v by_o any_o because_o he_o be_v great_a than_o all_o thing_n we_o be_v in_o heaven_n when_o 25._o we_o be_v resign_v to_o he_o whether_o we_o live_v or_o die_v we_o be_v still_o in_o heaven_n when_o we_o be_v in_o god_n now_o be_v thus_o divine_o in_o god_n we_o do_v not_o notwithstanding_o receive_v the_o material_a and_o bodily_a reparation_n of_o the_o suffering_n which_o we_o have_v material_o and_o bodily_a endure_v and_o as_o god_n have_v give_v we_o both_o a_o body_n and_o soul_n he_o have_v also_o give_v we_o a_o paradise_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n for_o this_o cause_n god_n will_v have_v become_v man_n even_o though_o man_n have_v never_o sin_v for_o god_n make_v all_o his_o work_n perfect_a and_o complete_a the_o soul_n can_v indeed_o have_v its_o complete_a paradise_n by_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n because_o it_o be_v a_o spirit_n like_a to_o he_o but_o the_o body_n can_v have_v no_o paradise_n but_o a_o material_a and_o bodily_a one_o like_o itself_o because_o it_o be_v of_o a_o material_a nature_n it_o can_v have_v a_o perfect_a happiness_n by_o a_o spirit_n or_o divinity_n lo_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o man_n that_o he_o may_v be_v happy_a must_v of_o necessity_n have_v his_o paradise_n in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v create_v by_o god_n for_o no_o other_o end_n 28._o but_o to_o serve_v for_o a_o paradise_n to_o man_n who_o he_o be_v please_v to_o create_v of_o a_o bodily_a and_o spiritual_a nature_n both_o together_o and_o he_o have_v also_o prepare_v for_o he_o both_o a_o bodily_a and_o spiritual_a blessedness_n which_o be_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n as_o to_o the_o spiritual_a and_o for_o the_o corporeal_a the_o earth_n and_o the_o world_n and_o all_o that_o therein_o be_v by_o which_o you_o may_v see_v sir_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o earth_n to_o reign_v with_o man_n that_o their_o eternal_a blessedness_n may_v be_v complete_v and_o that_o every_o one_o may_v have_v a_o reparation_n by_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n not_o in_o a_o speculative_a or_o imaginary_a way_n or_o of_o a_o short_a continuance_n but_o a_o real_a divine_a and_o corporeal_a reparation_n 17._o which_o will_v last_v for_o ever_o for_o god_n recompense_n be_v not_o temporal_a and_o finite_a but_o eternal_a as_o come_v from_o a_o eternal_a god_n who_o can_v give_v finite_a or_o imperfect_a gift_n consider_v sir_n all_o these_o truth_n and_o you_o will_v perceive_v sensible_o why_o christ_n must_v come_v to_o reign_v upon_o earth_n and_o that_o he_o have_v not_o take_v a_o human_a body_n to_o reign_v in_o the_o empyreal_a heaven_n which_o be_v divine_a but_o only_o to_o reign_v on_o earth_n for_o this_o divinity_n have_v no_o need_n of_o any_o body_n but_o this_o body_n have_v need_n of_o and_o must_v of_o necessity_n have_v some_o material_a place_n to_o contain_v it_o such_o as_o the_o earth_n be_v and_o if_o to_o repair_v a_o injury_n do_v to_o any_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o make_v the_o reparation_n in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o before_o the_o same_o person_n where_o the_o injury_n be_v do_v why_o shall_v not_o god_n repair_v upon_o earth_n the_o injury_n receive_v there_o on_o earth_n they_o shall_v be_v 11._o repair_v as_o on_o earth_n they_o have_v be_v commit_v the_o eight_o conference_n show_v that_o m._n anthoinette_n bourignon_fw-fr be_v send_v from_o god_n to_o declare_v the_o truth_n to_o men._n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o i_o be_v now_o convince_v of_o all_o that_o i_o must_v confess_v before_o all_o the_o world_n that_o she_o possess_v the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o a_o humane_a spirit_n can_v never_o give_v so_o clear_a a_o understanding_n of_o all_o the_o marvel_n of_o god_n she_o say_v sir_n you_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o believe_v that_o i_o possess_v the_o holy_a spirit_n because_o he_o live_v in_o i_o and_o teach_v i_o all_o that_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o for_o i_o have_v never_o learn_v any_o thing_n from_o any_o man_n neither_o will_v i_o learn_v of_o they_o because_o they_o be_v in_o darkness_n and_o do_v not_o know_v the_o truth_n in_o any_o thing_n they_o believe_v they_o be_v very_o learned_a and_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o 22._o ignorant_o be_v turn_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n by_o so_o many_o novelty_n which_o they_o have_v make_v they_o believe_v they_o will_v needs_o maintain_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v holy_a and_o own_o her_o council_n as_o act_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n while_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o be_v true_a for_o the_o church_n 5._o be_v the_o babylon_n of_o confusion_n and_o the_o council_n be_v the_o mean_n by_o which_o the_o devil_n have_v withdraw_v christian_n from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n they_o have_v ordain_v so_o many_o outward_a thing_n that_o the_o inward_a may_v be_v forget_v and_o that_o through_o so_o many_o natural_a thing_n people_n may_v think_v no_o more_o of_o the_o spiritual_a their_o command_n their_o sacrament_n their_o indulgence_n be_v all_o diversion_n from_o salvation_n to_o obtain_v which_o there_o be_v nothing_o needful_a for_o all_o person_n even_o those_o who_o be_v without_o god_n grace_n and_o stray_v from_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n 19_o but_o the_o observe_v the_o command_v of_o god_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o god_n will_v never_o give_v any_o other_o command_v and_o jesus_n christ_n will_v never_o give_v any_o other_o counsel_n than_o those_o he_o have_v give_v we_o by_o his_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o 13._o come_v for_o the_o righteous_a but_o for_o sinner_n this_o be_v so_o all_o sinner_n who_o desire_v to_o be_v convert_v must_v take_v up_o this_o gospel-life_n by_o which_o they_o shall_v certain_o attain_v to_o salvation_n since_o jesus_n christ_n be_v
or_o follow_v he_o blind_o as_o these_o christian_n say_v we_o must_v obey_v and_o follow_v man_n blind_o for_o when_o we_o consider_v all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o observe_v what_o he_o have_v do_v for_o we_o it_o be_v impossible_a we_o shall_v cease_v to_o love_v and_o follow_v such_o a_o benefactor_n if_o we_o have_v but_o the_o light_n of_o a_o heathen_a we_o will_v not_o ready_o yield_v this_o blind_a submission_n to_o man_n because_o they_o be_v not_o our_o creator_n nor_o our_o saviour_n and_o our_o dependence_n ought_v to_o be_v upon_o the_o lord_n who_o create_v all_o thing_n but_o not_o on_o frail_a man_n like_o ourselves_o who_o can_v give_v we_o nothing_o but_o promise_n without_o effect_n for_o they_o deceive_v we_o when_o they_o promise_v we_o salvation_n since_o they_o can_v give_v it_o to_o themselves_o and_o yet_o all_o the_o world_n believe_v they_o shall_v save_v all_o christian_n of_o who_o i_o know_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o that_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n because_o they_o neither_o know_v god_n nor_o true_a virtue_n but_o have_v their_o understanding_n blind_v by_o the_o discourse_n of_o man_n who_o desire_v to_o love_v and_o be_v love_v by_o their_o like_a and_o instead_o of_o lead_v they_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n to_o love_n and_o follow_v he_o they_o draw_v they_o to_o love_v themselves_o and_o by_o this_o blind_a conduct_n every_o one_o run_v to_o perdition_n while_o many_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n so_o that_o i_o may_v well_o travel_v through_o all_o christendom_n with_o a_o lantern_n to_o find_v out_o so_o much_o as_o one_o man_n as_o the_o philosopher_n do_v through_o the_o city_n of_o athens_n because_o no_o body_n any_o long_a use_v his_o reason_n to_o see_v the_o obligation_n that_o we_o have_v to_o depend_v upon_o the_o will_n of_o god_n nor_o yet_o to_o consider_v the_o misery_n and_o shortness_n of_o this_o life_n nor_o the_o vanity_n of_o transitory_a thing_n but_o be_v in_o all_o this_o as_o if_o they_o be_v void_a of_o understanding_n and_o follow_v one_o another_o blind_o without_o consider_v any_o other_o thing_n for_o if_o man_n do_v only_o use_v his_o reason_n he_o will_v see_v clear_o that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o depend_v upon_o his_o god_n since_o he_o have_v receive_v all_o from_o he_o and_o can_v pretend_v to_o nothing_o but_o from_o he_o his_o natural_a instinct_n do_v sufficient_o incline_v he_o to_o this_o dependence_n though_o they_o call_v this_o a_o heathen_a light_n this_o be_v not_o that_o it_o be_v simple_o natural_a but_o it_o be_v a_o impression_n that_o god_n make_v on_o our_o understanding_n which_o lead_v we_o to_o know_v god_n and_o to_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o he_o which_o if_o we_o do_v we_o be_v happy_a in_o whatsoever_o nation_n we_o be_v for_o god_n never_o demand_v any_o other_o thing_n of_o man_n but_o this_o resignation_n to_o his_o will_n and_o if_o he_o have_v since_o appoint_v law_n this_o be_v but_o by_o reason_n of_o man_n frailty_n have_v never_o former_o subject_v they_o to_o any_o law_n but_o that_o of_o depend_v upon_o he_o as_o he_o will_v not_o yet_o provide_v we_o will_v submit_v to_o he_o this_o our_o christian_n do_v not_o though_o they_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o it_o trouble_v i_o much_o to_o hear_v that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o christian_a be_v resign_v to_o god_n she_o say_v sir_n that_o you_o may_v not_o believe_v this_o blind_o recall_v to_o mind_v a_o little_a the_o person_n who_o you_o have_v hold_v for_o good_a man_n and_o consider_v narrow_o all_o their_o behaviour_n that_o you_o may_v see_v whether_o they_o be_v not_o guide_v by_o their_o own_o will_n even_o in_o their_o pious_a work_n whether_o they_o be_v not_o do_v from_o their_o own_o inclination_n you_o will_v find_v that_o this_o have_v always_o be_v at_o the_o helm_n to_o govern_v all_o and_o that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o please_v ourselves_o many_o good_a work_n will_v be_v leave_v undo_v for_o my_o part_n i_o have_v remark_v this_o in_o all_o the_o person_n who_o i_o have_v know_v and_o i_o never_o know_v but_o one_o maid_n truth_n who_o be_v resign_v to_o god_n nevertheless_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o those_o who_o have_v the_o great_a reputation_n for_o virtue_n and_o i_o always_o perceive_v that_o their_o action_n though_o good_a be_v mingle_v with_o self-love_n which_o hinder_v a_o resignation_n to_o god_n for_o as_o long_o as_o our_o selfwill_a will_v bear_v rule_n god_n can_v have_v our_o submission_n 9_o 35._o these_o be_v all_o dead_a work_n which_o shall_v be_v recompense_v only_o in_o this_o world_n and_o not_o at_o all_o in_o the_o other_o i_o have_v see_v person_n give_v to_o fast_v watch_v and_o prayer_n diligent_a in_o go_v to_o church_n and_o in_o relieve_v the_o poor_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o of_o this_o they_o subject_v not_o their_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n but_o follow_v their_o own_o as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v imagine_v that_o they_o do_v all_o for_o god_n while_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n for_o if_o god_n have_v govern_v their_o will_n they_o will_v have_v do_v all_o their_o action_n both_o small_a and_o great_a in_o the_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n from_o which_o they_o be_v very_o far_o estrange_v and_o if_o they_o have_v be_v capable_a of_o it_o i_o will_v have_v make_v appear_v to_o they_o that_o their_o best_a action_n be_v very_o unblamable_a and_o accompany_v with_o presumption_n and_o self-satisfaction_n in_o this_o many_o deceive_v themselves_o and_o believe_v they_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n though_o they_o be_v very_o far_o from_o it_o you_o must_v not_o be_v trouble_v sir_n to_o hear_v it_o say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o christian_a in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n since_o it_o be_v true_a and_o none_o be_v resign_v to_o god_n but_o we_o ought_v to_o bewail_v their_o blindness_n and_o desire_n and_o pray_v that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v since_o there_o be_v time_n for_o repentance_n and_o leisure_n to_o return_v to_o god_n even_o to_o the_o last_o moment_n of_o our_o life_n if_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n as_o all_o these_o false_a prophet_n do_v their_o salvation_n will_v certain_o be_v desperate_a because_o every_o one_o will_v rest_v on_o such_o a_o dangerous_a estate_n it_o be_v far_o better_a to_o tell_v the_o truth_n by_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n that_o they_o may_v strive_v to_o recover_v it_o than_o to_o flatter_v they_o with_o false_a word_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o acceptable_a to_o they_o to_o hear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o resign_v to_o god_n if_o it_o be_v most_o true_a than_o to_o hear_v that_o dreadful_a sentence_n 41._o go_v you_o curse_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n when_o they_o shall_v have_v think_v to_o hear_v come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n inherit_v the_o kingdom_n for_o it_o will_v be_v too_o late_o at_o death_n to_o return_v to_o a_o dependence_n upon_o god_n and_o it_o be_v not_o so_o now_o by_o which_o you_o may_v see_v sir_n that_o there_o be_v more_o reason_n to_o be_v trouble_v when_o we_o hear_v they_o say_v that_o christian_n be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n than_o when_o they_o say_v they_o be_v in_o that_o of_o damnation_n when_o it_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v because_o of_o their_o blindness_n for_o if_o i_o do_v not_o most_o evident_o perceive_v this_o i_o will_v not_o affirm_v such_o unpleasant_a thing_n but_o i_o shall_v be_v without_o charity_n if_o i_o shall_v not_o declare_v so_o important_a truth_n while_o we_o be_v yet_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o penitence_n for_o i_o perceive_v inward_o in_o my_o soul_n that_o the_o thought_n word_n and_o action_n of_o man_n be_v not_o at_o all_o direct_v by_o god_n for_o they_o partake_v not_o of_o his_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a they_o be_v all_o full_a of_o self-interest_n self-honour_n or_o pleasure_n and_o notwithstanding_o no_o body_n will_v willing_o be_v reprove_v every_o one_o desire_n to_o continue_v as_o he_o be_v without_o know_v his_o fault_n and_o much_o less_o amend_v it_o cover_v and_o palliate_v his_o misery_n and_o excuse_v they_o as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v so_o that_o i_o see_v no_o good_a that_o can_v be_v do_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o christian_n for_o they_o trust_v too_o much_o to_o the_o false_a persuasion_n of_o their_o salvation_n therefore_o i_o will_v retire_v and_o bid_v you_o adieu_o not_o that_o i_o be_o displease_v to_o be_v among_o man_n to_o
she_o say_v how_o cruel_a be_v it_o to_o hear_v sir_n that_o god_n shall_v destinate_a a_o mass_n of_o reprobate_n this_o be_v as_o if_o they_o will_v say_v that_o god_n be_v wicked_a from_o the_o creation_n of_o man_n for_o if_o he_o be_v not_o he_o will_v not_o have_v create_v a_o mass_n of_o reprobate_n to_o be_v miserable_a to_o all_o eternity_n do_v what_o they_o will_n this_o necessity_n of_o be_v damn_v reflect_v upon_o god_n for_o if_o he_o have_v not_o create_v they_o to_o damnation_n they_o can_v not_o be_v miserable_a to_o all_o eternity_n and_o god_n can_v not_o create_v they_o for_o damnation_n but_o out_o of_o pure_a malice_n set_v aside_o this_o he_o will_v rather_o have_v leave_v they_o in_o nothing_o than_o to_o create_v they_o for_o reprobation_n true_o sir_n a_o great_a blasphemy_n can_v be_v utter_v against_o god_n than_o this_o for_o it_o shock_n all_o his_o quality_n of_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n which_o be_v his_o eternal_a quality_n 15._o without_o which_o he_o can_v never_o do_v any_o thing_n if_o he_o have_v create_v one_o part_n of_o man_n for_o damnation_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v do_v a_o just_a thing_n since_o these_o reprobate_n do_v not_o merit_v damnation_n before_o they_o have_v a_o be_v and_o can_v not_o in_o justice_n be_v reprobate_v without_o have_v deserve_v it_o neither_o can_v god_n exercise_v his_o goodness_n in_o determine_v the_o damnation_n of_o any_o since_o this_o damnation_n be_v the_o great_a evil_n in_o the_o world_n how_o shall_v he_o be_v good_a in_o do_v so_o great_a evil_n to_o man_n and_o how_o shall_v he_o be_v true_a in_o reprobate_v those_o of_o who_o he_o say_v that_o 31._o his_o delight_n be_v to_o be_v with_o they_o since_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o man_n he_o must_v want_v judgement_n and_o reason_n who_o believe_v that_o god_n create_v a_o mass_n of_o damn_a the_o superstition_n of_o christian_n must_v have_v invent_v this_o blaspheme_n against_o god_n to_o authorise_v their_o authority_n and_o to_o show_v that_o god_n also_o use_v authority_n over_o man_n as_o they_o will_v use_v it_o over_o their_o like_a this_o be_v against_o truth_n for_o god_n be_v not_o partial_a nor_o will_v he_o ever_o use_v passion_n towards_o any_o all_o these_o word_n and_o dispute_n be_v so_o many_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n of_o which_o 3._o the_o whore_n in_o the_o revelation_n be_v full_a for_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o any_o other_o sect_n or_o nation_n say_v that_o reprobation_n be_v determine_v of_o god_n i_o ask_v she_o what_o i_o ought_v to_o believe_v in_o this_o matter_n that_o i_o may_v not_o blaspheme_v against_o god_n she_o say_v sir_n we_o ought_v to_o go_v to_o the_o original_a of_o man_n and_o see_v in_o his_o beginning_n how_o he_o be_v create_v god_n take_v not_o two_o mass_n of_o earth_n to_o create_v the_o one_o of_o they_o for_o salvation_n and_o the_o other_o for_o damnation_n but_o only_o one_o mass_n of_o earth_n with_o which_o he_o create_v one_o man_n only_o for_o salvation_n 59_o create_v in_o he_o all_o the_o man_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v he_o create_v they_o all_o in_o general_n in_o the_o state_n of_o innocence_n and_o salvation_n and_o for_o this_o end_n give_v abundance_n of_o grace_n both_o spiritual_a and_o bodily_a and_o that_o equal_o to_o all_o without_o exception_n of_o any_o give_v to_o all_o a_o divine_a soul_n and_o a_o freewill_n that_o they_o may_v be_v capable_a to_o do_v all_o manner_n of_o good_a and_o see_v god_n create_v all_o man_n in_o adam_n he_o can_v not_o have_v create_v any_o for_o reprobation_n but_o all_o for_o salvation_n none_o except_v this_o be_v so_o as_o it_o true_o be_v no_o body_n can_v be_v create_v for_o damnation_n as_o they_o will_v very_o unreasonable_o make_v it_o be_v believe_v for_o if_o some_o must_v be_v necessary_o damn_v or_o save_v they_o shall_v not_o have_v freewill_n which_o none_o can_v deny_v for_o all_o man_n receive_v a_o divine_a soul_n and_o freewill_n in_o adam_n who_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o elect_n and_o after_o he_o all_o his_o posterity_n for_o god_n never_o will_v 9_o that_o any_o shall_v perish_v but_o that_o they_o live_v and_o see_v he_o will_v that_o they_o live_v how_o can_v he_o create_v they_o for_o reprobation_n since_o there_o can_v never_o be_v any_o contradiction_n in_o god_n never_o believe_v sir_n that_o any_o be_v create_v for_o damnation_n but_o if_o any_o damn_v themselves_o it_o be_v 25._o contrary_a to_o the_o design_n of_o god_n and_o because_o 14._o they_o will_v needs_o use_v their_o freewill_n to_o apply_v it_o to_o evil_n for_o if_o they_o follow_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a 23._o impression_n that_o he_o have_v give_v they_o they_o can_v never_o damn_v or_o destroy_v themselves_o even_o though_o they_o have_v sin_v because_o god_n desire_v not_o 11._o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v convert_v and_o live_v by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o god_n do_v not_o reprobate_a the_o sinner_n more_o than_o the_o just_a but_o desire_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o none_o reprobate_v as_o they_o maintain_v but_o man_n now_o etc._n be_v full_a of_o vice_n and_o passion_n of_o love_n and_o hatred_n without_o any_o thing_n of_o righteousness_n goodness_n and_o truth_n they_o will_v fain_o give_v authority_n to_o their_o malice_n by_o make_v a_o god_n 1._o to_o go_v before_o they_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o passion_n and_o as_o they_o in_o take_v dominon_n over_o man_n do_v according_a to_o their_o inclination_n disgrace_v or_o favour_v they_o they_o will_v make_v god_n as_o partial_a as_o they_o know_v they_o be_v themselves_o say_v that_o he_o damn_v some_o and_o save_v other_o according_a to_o his_o pleasure_n which_o will_v never_o be_v for_o god_n be_v no_o more_o subject_n to_o passion_n than_o to_o change_v we_o ought_v always_o to_o come_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o retake_v the_o original_a and_o the_o essence_n of_o thing_n without_o amuse_v ourselves_o with_o the_o discourse_n of_o man_n who_o say_v and_o do_v according_a to_o their_o advantage_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o incline_v to_o use_v their_o freewill_n aright_o they_o will_v fain_o lay_v the_o blame_n on_o god_n say_v they_o have_v not_o his_o grace_n or_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o be_v predestinate_v to_o his_o salvation_n which_o make_v a_o great_a many_o perish_v through_o sloth_n or_o negligence_n say_v if_o they_o be_v elect_v they_o shall_v certain_o be_v save_v and_o if_o they_o be_v reprobate_v they_o shall_v certain_o be_v damn_v do_v what_o they_o will_n this_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n for_o god_n do_v not_o create_v man_n a_o kind_n of_o limit_a creature_n and_o though_o it_o seem_v sometime_o as_o if_o god_n determine_v good_a or_o evil_a fortune_n yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v not_o true_a for_o he_o will_v not_o determine_v against_o the_o freewill_n of_o man_n who_o shall_v still_o be_v capable_a of_o use_v it_o well_o or_o ill_o but_o because_o our_o understanding_n be_v bound_v it_o can_v comprehend_v only_o the_o accident_n it_o see_v without_o discover_v their_o source_n or_o original_n for_o example_n we_o see_v a_o man_n become_v poor_a though_o he_o labour_v and_o be_v no_o prodigal_n we_o say_v immediate_o it_o be_v god_n that_o afflict_v he_o by_o evil_a fortune_n while_o it_o be_v for_o want_v of_o foresight_n or_o management_n in_o his_o affair_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o it_o be_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n create_v man_n for_o damnation_n but_o that_o god_n reprobate_v man_n after_o his_o sin_n which_o have_v undo_v they_o all_o she_o say_v sir_n you_o will_v find_v this_o absurd_a for_o if_o all_o man_n be_v create_v in_o adam_n they_o be_v all_o 12._o also_o fall_v in_o adam_n and_o consequent_o there_o can_v not_o be_v a_o mass_n of_o predestinate_v after_o sin_n because_o all_o in_o general_n be_v reprobate_v and_o damn_v by_o the_o same_o sin_n of_o adam_n he_o have_v sin_v with_o his_o freewill_n there_o be_v no_o long_o any_o thing_n sound_a in_o it_o for_o if_o he_o have_v not_o give_v a_o full_a consent_n of_o his_o will_n to_o sin_n none_o will_v have_v be_v damn_v because_o of_o the_o imperfection_n of_o his_o full_a consent_n as_o we_o do_v not_o commit_v a_o mortal_a sin_n when_o our_o will_n do_v not_o give_v full_a consent_n to_o evil_a and_o no_o body_n doubt_v but_o adam_n give_v the_o full_a consent_n of_o his_o will_n in_o disobey_v god_n and_o consequent_o he_o be_v damn_v and_o all_o man_n with_o he_o none_o except_v for_o he_o can_v not_o have_v a_o divide_a will_n nor_o one_o part_n sound_n and_o another_o damn_v because_o there_o be_v
of_o election_n and_o reprobation_n and_o both_o necessary_o so_o she_o say_v this_o be_v sir_n because_o these_o person_n though_o well-meaning_a do_v not_o discover_v the_o goodness_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n and_o they_o judge_v only_o according_a to_o the_o appearance_n of_o thing_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o reality_n for_o god_n can_v never_o reprobate_a any_o after_o that_o he_o have_v create_v all_o for_o salvation_n and_o he_o can_v damn_v they_o for_o adam_n sin_n after_o he_o have_v pardon_v it_o and_o man_n have_v undertake_v the_o penitence_n that_o god_n enjoin_v he_o on_o that_o occasion_n if_o there_o be_v any_o reprobate_v for_o this_o sin_n of_o adam_n in_o strict_a justice_n adam_n ought_v to_o be_v first_o of_o all_o reprobated_a since_o he_o first_o commit_v the_o sin_n it_o be_v sad_a to_o see_v and_o hear_v how_o man_n 5._o mistake_v the_o quality_n of_o god_n make_v he_o pass_v as_o unjust_a and_o evil_a like_o themselves_o i_o be_o sorry_a sir_n that_o i_o must_v be_v so_o prolix_a in_o this_o matter_n but_o the_o thing_n require_v it_o because_o it_o be_v a_o most_o important_a point_n that_o regard_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o i_o can_v speak_v too_o much_o of_o it_o be_v not_o you_o more_o weary_a to_o hear_v than_o i_o be_o to_o speak_v of_o it_o i_o have_v still_o have_v strange_a contradiction_n in_o my_o spirit_n when_o i_o hear_v person_n of_o sincerity_n aim_v to_o maintain_v the_o truth_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o very_o far_o from_o know_v it_o and_o take_v the_o sentiment_n of_o man_n for_o infallible_a truth_n though_o very_o often_o they_o persist_v in_o their_o ignorance_n which_o be_v so_o great_a and_o so_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o many_o for_o he_o who_o believe_v he_o be_v predestinate_v to_o salvation_n will_v not_o be_v at_o the_o pain_n to_o procure_v it_o and_o though_o he_o fall_v into_o sin_n he_o will_v not_o repent_v of_o they_o believe_v that_o he_o can_v be_v damn_v and_o that_o he_o shall_v one_o day_n repent_v though_o it_o be_v but_o the_o last_o of_o his_o life_n consider_v a_o little_a sir_n what_o sloth_n this_o occasion_n in_o those_o well-meaning_a person_n and_o in_o what_o hazard_n they_o put_v their_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v a_o delusion_n to_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o god_n predestination_n live_v as_o we_o please_v for_o god_n will_v never_o save_o any_o since_o adam_n sin_n but_o those_o who_o of_o their_o freewill_n shall_v resign_v themselves_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n though_o his_o goodness_n save_v all_o man_n in_o create_v they_o without_o any_o co-operation_n of_o they_o yet_o he_o will_v save_o none_o without_o it_o after_o they_o have_v their_o free-wil_n to_o make_v choice_n of_o good_a or_o evil_n god_n can_v indeed_o save_o they_o before_o they_o make_v resistance_n and_o while_o he_o be_v absolute_a lord_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o since_o he_o give_v they_o this_o freewill_n to_o govern_v themselves_o and_o so_o many_o other_o thing_n he_o can_v save_v they_o without_o themselves_o therefore_o no_o body_n shall_v flatter_v himself_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v if_o he_o be_v predestinate_v see_v this_o predestination_n can_v have_v no_o more_o place_n since_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n every_o one_o must_v 12._o exercise_v himself_o to_o work_v out_o his_o salvation_n because_o no_o body_n shall_v obtain_v it_o but_o he_o who_o of_o his_o own_o freewill_n shall_v yield_v up_o 6._o into_o god_n hand_n the_o free_a liberty_n that_o he_o give_v he_o these_o be_v the_o elect_a because_o they_o be_v yield_v up_o unto_o god_n none_o can_v pluck_v 28._o they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n unless_o the_o person_n himself_o shall_v yet_o 38._o withdraw_v from_o god_n which_o be_v almost_o impossible_a because_o god_n still_o direct_v he_o his_o will_n can_v no_o more_o be_v lead_v to_o evil_a than_o that_o of_o god_n be_v unto_o which_o it_o be_v join_v and_o unite_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n replenish_v it_o with_o so_o many_o grace_n 4._o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a not_o to_o follow_v they_o how_o can_v the_o same_o goodness_n ordain_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v reprobate_v since_o nothing_o that_o be_v evil_a can_v proceed_v from_o it_o must_v not_o the_o reprobation_n of_o man_n of_o necessity_n come_v from_o their_o evil_a will_n since_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o god_n to_o do_v evil_a it_o be_v consequent_o impossible_a for_o he_o to_o reprobate_n so_o much_o as_o one_o soul_n if_o it_o be_v it_o be_v still_o its_o own_o fault_n only_o and_o not_o at_o all_o a_o predestination_n to_o damnation_n because_o god_n damn_v no_o 9_o body_n not_o even_o at_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o they_o who_o shall_v be_v then_o absolute_a reprobate_n shall_v condemn_v 2-15_a themselves_o when_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n shall_v appear_v to_o they_o their_o injustice_n will_v give_v sentence_n against_o themselves_o and_o confine_v 3._o they_o to_o hell_n as_o the_o just_a merit_n of_o their_o iniquity_n and_o not_o at_o all_o as_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n i_o say_v to_o she_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o god_n can_v damn_v no_o body_n since_o he_o be_v all_o good_a and_o can_v do_v no_o evil_a that_o notwithstanding_o of_o this_o we_o see_v according_a to_o our_o short_a prospect_n of_o effect_n as_o if_o man_n be_v predestinate_v to_o good_a and_o evil_n as_o in_o the_o conversion_n of_o st._n paul_n 3._o and_o of_o 37._o mary_n magdalen_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o reprobation_n 12._o of_o judas_n and_o 39_o of_o the_o wicked_a thief_n she_o say_v sir_n these_o different_a accident_n be_v not_o consider_v in_o their_o source_n but_o only_o superficial_o go_v over_o and_o judge_v according_a to_o humane_a sentiment_n which_o do_v not_o penetrate_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n st._n paul_n be_v not_o only_o a_o choose_a vessel_n on_o god_n part_n but_o also_o on_o the_o part_n of_o his_o own_o free_a will_n for_o after_o he_o have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n he_o be_v always_o 6._o zealous_a of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a he_o have_v resign_v his_o freewill_n to_o god_n according_a to_o his_o knowledge_n because_o all_o that_o move_v he_o to_o persecute_v the_o christian_n be_v only_o a_o desire_n to_o maintain_v his_o law_n which_o he_o believe_v be_v more_o perfect_a as_o be_v give_v by_o god_n and_o imagine_v that_o the_o christian_n aim_v to_o destroy_v it_o he_o will_v maintain_v it_o and_o believe_v that_o by_o do_v this_o he_o great_o please_v god_n who_o see_v this_o good_a desire_n 13._o will_v needs_o draw_v he_o out_o of_o his_o ignorance_n in_o a_o outward_a and_o extraordinary_a manner_n because_o it_o be_v god_n property_n to_o abound_v in_o grace_n and_o to_o prevent_v man_n of_o good_a will_n by_o such_o mean_n as_o whereby_o they_o may_v discover_v that_o he_o favour_v they_o therefore_o he_o appear_v visible_o to_o st._n paul_n by_o some_o light_n and_o make_v he_o blind_a ask_v he_o wherefore_o he_o persecure_v he_o make_v he_o understand_v by_o these_o outward_a sign_n the_o state_n of_o his_o soul_n by_o the_o light_n he_o show_v he_o that_o he_o be_v in_o darkness_n by_o the_o blindness_n of_o his_o eye_n the_o blindness_n of_o his_o mind_n which_o must_v be_v direct_v to_o some_o one_o who_o may_v make_v he_o see_v the_o truth_n and_o by_o the_o question_n wherefore_o he_o persecute_v he_o to_o show_v he_o how_o much_o he_o be_v deceive_v in_o prosecute_a the_o christian_n who_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n this_o he_o know_v not_o all_o these_o thing_n fall_v out_o not_o because_o god_n 14._o have_v partial_o choose_v st._n paul_n to_o be_v his_o apostle_n but_o because_o he_o have_v of_o his_o own_o freewill_n choose_v to_o follow_v good_a and_o to_o resign_v himself_o too_o god_n but_o whereas_o man_n see_v only_o these_o outward_a thing_n they_o believe_v god_n act_n by_o passion_n as_o they_o do_v and_o that_o he_o prefer_v one_o of_o his_o creature_n to_o another_o which_o he_o do_v not_o at_o all_o for_o he_o love_v they_o all_o equal_o as_o be_v all_o his_o child_n and_o nevertheless_o give_v more_o grace_n to_o those_o who_o be_v most_o resign_v to_o he_o and_o this_o with_o reason_n for_o a_o son_n who_o do_v his_o father_n pleasure_n and_o be_v dedicate_v to_o his_o will_n be_v more_o worthy_a of_o favour_n than_o another_o who_o resist_v and_o despise_v the_o will_n of_o the_o same_o father_n magdalen_n receive_v also_o the_o grace_n of_o conversion_n though_o she_o be_v a_o sinner_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v well_o her_o inward_a disposition_n we_o shall_v clear_o perceive_v that_o she_o be_v true_o
be_v some_o half-broken_a spirit_n who_o through_o melancholy_n love_v rather_o to_o be_v alone_o to_o give_v the_o more_o liberty_n to_o its_o black_a humour_n this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o those_o who_o despise_v conversation_n the_o better_a to_o wait_v on_o god_n and_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o trouble_v they_o have_v to_o live_v among_o those_o who_o know_v not_o god_n but_o offend_v he_o every_o moment_n 35._o how_o can_v i_o believe_v sir_n that_o these_o soul_n so_o excel_v in_o virtue_n shall_v not_o be_v save_v even_o though_o they_o be_v not_o baptise_a since_o baptism_n be_v only_o a_o outward_a sign_n of_o the_o inward_a resignation_n which_o they_o have_v make_v of_o their_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n that_o god_n who_o 10._o try_v the_o reins_o will_v he_o not_o save_v they_o for_o not_o have_v observe_v this_o outward_a formality_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n we_o have_v not_o a_o political_a god_n who_o have_v need_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n when_o he_o see_v the_o essence_n of_o faith_n live_v in_o our_o inward_a part_n i_o reckon_v such_o heathen_n to_o be_v more_o saint_n than_o many_o of_o those_o who_o be_v canonize_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o wish_v sir_n that_o you_o have_v attain_v to_o their_o solid_a virtue_n that_o you_o have_v a_o perfect_a contempt_n of_o this_o life_n aspire_v after_o another_o which_o will_v deliver_v we_o from_o so_o many_o misery_n and_o also_o a_o entire_a resignation_n of_o your_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n in_o which_o alone_o our_o salvation_n consist_v and_o not_o in_o so_o many_o sort_n of_o mean_n which_o they_o set_v before_o we_o as_o necessary_a thing_n or_o a_o blind_a faith_n of_o thing_n which_o often_o respect_v neither_o god_n nor_o our_o salvation_n for_o though_o indeed_o it_o be_v faith_n to_o believe_v that_o which_o 1._o we_o do_v not_o see_v nevertheless_o that_o be_v not_o to_o say_v that_o we_o must_v blind_o believe_v all_o that_o they_o will_v persuade_v we_o for_o god_n have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n to_o comprehend_v what_o be_v comprehensible_a of_o the_o work_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o example_n we_o must_v believe_v in_o god_n almighty_a who_o create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n we_o do_v not_o so_o see_v this_o god_n in_o who_o we_o believe_v but_o nevertheless_o we_o see_v evident_o that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o almighty_a god_n when_o we_o consider_v the_o work_n that_o he_o have_v do_v by_o his_o almighty_a power_n and_o therefore_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o blind_a since_o it_o give_v light_a to_o see_v the_o work_n of_o he_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v but_o diverse_a of_o these_o thing_n which_o they_o propose_v to_o we_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v without_o any_o appearance_n of_o truth_n as_o be_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n i_o ask_v she_o if_o one_o may_v be_v save_v without_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o particular_a she_o say_v yes_o sir_n we_o may_v be_v save_v by_o the_o general_n belief_n 8._o that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a god_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n provide_v that_o this_o belief_n beget_v in_o we_o the_o resign_v of_o our_o will_n to_o god_n in_o who_o we_o believe_v because_o in_o this_o all_o thing_n be_v comprehend_v since_o by_o be_v 24._o resign_v to_o god_n we_o fulfil_v all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n all_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o evangelical_n counsel_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v oblige_v to_o learn_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o our_o belief_n nevertheless_o this_o be_v not_o that_o they_o must_v learn_v this_o by_o rote_n or_o by_o word_n for_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o know_v the_o substance_n of_o they_o that_o we_o may_v observe_v they_o for_o this_o observe_n of_o they_o be_v more_o than_o to_o be_v able_a to_o tell_v they_o by_o rote_n it_o be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o all_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o particular_a it_o be_v of_o little_a moment_n that_o we_o have_v a_o particular_a belief_n of_o so_o many_o point_n if_o we_o do_v not_o observe_v they_o all_o in_o general_n by_o the_o resign_v of_o our_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n we_o have_v no_o need_n of_o do_v any_o other_o thing_n to_o work_v out_o our_o salvation_n for_o if_o we_o have_v not_o quit_v this_o dependence_n upon_o god_n we_o shall_v never_o have_v have_v the_o other_o commandment_n nor_o the_o other_o article_n of_o faith_n our_o sin_n alone_o have_v occasion_v all_o these_o article_n and_o all_o these_o commandment_n and_o other_o mean_n and_o sin_n cease_v we_o shall_v have_v no_o need_n of_o other_o law_n so_o that_o our_o sin_n alone_o have_v engender_v the_o law_n and_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v give_v we_o only_o to_o reduce_v our_o understanding_n to_o a_o dependence_n upon_o god_n the_o first_o thing_n that_o god_n do_v to_o bring_v back_o adam_n to_o this_o dependence_n from_o whence_o he_o have_v withdraw_v himself_o while_o he_o will_v needs_o become_v wise_a in_o himself_o he_o ask_v he_o 9_o adam_z where_o be_v thou_o not_o that_o god_n can_v be_v ignorant_a where_o adam_n be_v since_o he_o know_v all_o thing_n but_o it_o be_v to_o recall_v his_o understanding_n to_o the_o consideration_n of_o what_o he_o have_v do_v in_o disobey_v god_n that_o he_o may_v consider_v the_o miserable_a state_n to_o which_o he_o have_v bring_v himself_o while_o he_o will_v needs_o depend_v upon_o himself_o the_o first_o precept_n that_o god_n give_v man_n be_v to_o make_v he_o know_v the_o state_n of_o his_o soul_n ask_v he_o where_o be_v thou_o to_o make_v he_o re-enter_v into_o himself_o and_o recollect_v his_o sense_n that_o he_o may_v see_v whither_o he_o have_v stray_v from_o a_o dependence_n upon_o his_o god_n in_o which_o if_o he_o have_v continue_v there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o ask_v where_o he_o be_v since_o he_o will_v have_v be_v still_o in_o his_o presence_n but_o since_o he_o have_v withdraw_v himself_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o god_n shall_v call_v he_o back_o again_o by_o ask_v he_o where_o he_o be_v but_o as_o soon_o as_o adam_n acknowledge_v his_o fault_n and_o offer_v himself_o to_o god_n say_v here_o be_o i_o lord_n all_o confuse_a and_o tremble_a not_o dare_v to_o appear_v before_o he_o but_o hide_v himself_o as_o a_o criminal_a before_o the_o face_n of_o his_o judge_n than_o god_n give_v he_o the_o second_o precept_n say_v that_o he_o shall_v till_o the_o ground_n and_o gain_v his_o bread_n in_o the_o sweat_n of_o his_o face_n this_o be_v the_o penitence_n enjoin_v to_o satisfy_v for_o his_o sin_n which_o be_v through_o grace_n remit_v to_o he_o he_o ought_v nevertheless_o to_o suffer_v some_o temporal_a punishment_n and_o this_o in_o justice_n for_o god_n have_v not_o only_o bestow_v on_o man_n a_o divine_a and_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o a_o freewill_n to_o love_v he_o but_o also_o many_o natural_a and_o material_a grace_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o man_n that_o god_n have_v grant_v he_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o trespass_n against_o he_o in_o restore_v he_o by_o a_o second_o grace_n his_o reason_n and_o his_o freewill_n but_o he_o ought_v also_o to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o natural_a and_o material_a grace_n which_o thing_n have_v not_o essential_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o pardon_v this_o injury_n receive_v from_o man._n god_n who_o be_v good_a pardon_v he_o the_o offence_n he_o have_v commit_v against_o his_o majesty_n and_o even_o make_v he_o a_o garment_n to_o cover_v his_o nakedness_n that_o he_o may_v lessen_v his_o confusion_n he_o take_v care_n also_o to_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o paradise_n for_o fear_v he_o shall_v come_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n live_v always_o miserable_a all_o these_o favour_n come_v from_o the_o divine_a goodness_n but_o the_o element_n the_o earth_n and_o the_o other_o creature_n not_o have_v in_o they_o this_o goodness_n set_v themselves_o against_o man_n and_o make_v he_o suffer_v that_o by_o penitence_n he_o may_v pay_v for_o the_o rebellion_n he_o have_v commit_v against_o their_o creator_n this_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n own_a by_o ordain_v adam_n to_o undergo_v the_o pain_n that_o all_o these_o earthly_a creature_n shall_v give_v he_o because_o they_o be_v just_o irritate_v against_o man_n who_o be_v constitute_v their_o lord_n to_o who_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v subject_a and_o to_o obey_v but_o since_o he_o be_v a_o rebel_n against_o his_o god_n they_o ought_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o rebel_v against_o he_o and_o be_v creature_n uncapable_a of_o mercy_n of_o necessity_n man_n must_v satisfy_v they_o by_o a_o corporeal_a and_o
still_o his_o spouse_n though_o there_o be_v but_o one_o soul_n only_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o when_o adam_n be_v create_v alone_o this_o number_n of_o many_o only_o make_v those_o bless_v who_o be_v of_o the_o number_n for_o god_n on_o his_o part_n takes_z as_o much_o delight_n with_o one_o soul_n only_o that_o be_v resign_v to_o he_o as_o he_o will_v do_v with_o a_o hundred_o million_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o quantity_n when_o the_o business_n be_v about_o quality_n if_o a_o hundred_o million_o of_o soul_n be_v resign_v to_o god_n they_o make_v altogether_o but_o one_o only_a church_n which_o can_v consist_v as_o well_o in_o one_o soul_n only_o as_o in_o this_o great_a number_n because_o the_o spouse_n of_o god_n 23._o be_v one_o and_o as_o in_o nature_n a_o man_n may_v have_v as_o much_o contentment_n in_o marry_v a_o wife_n who_o be_v little_a and_o tender_a as_o one_o that_o be_v big_a and_o lumpish_a without_o comparison_n god_n be_v as_o much_o honour_a though_o there_o be_v but_o one_o soul_n only_o in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v resign_v to_o he_o as_o if_o all_o man_n in_o general_n be_v so_o who_o only_o can_v receive_v themselves_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o happiness_n every_o one_o for_o his_o own_o particular_a for_o nothing_o can_v 9_o be_v take_v away_o nor_o add_v as_o to_o god_n who_o be_v and_o comprehend_v all_o thing_n his_o alliance_n that_o he_o have_v make_v with_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v not_o increase_v or_o diminish_v by_o the_o great_a or_o small_a body_n of_o his_o church_n he_o will_v still_o have_v his_o spouse_n with_o who_o he_o will_v take_v his_o delight_n in_o the_o kind_n that_o he_o create_v which_o be_v but_o one_o man_n alone_o she_o shall_v still_o be_v preserve_v as_o the_o rose_n among_o thorn_n how_o wicked_a soever_o the_o world_n may_v become_v his_o church_n will_v still_o remain_v there_o in_o her_o kind_n the_o church_n will_v always_o have_v her_o beauty_n and_o her_o quality_n as_o much_o in_o one_o soul_n alone_o as_o in_o a_o hundred_o million_o which_o altogether_o will_v make_v 18._o but_o one_o no_o more_o than_o if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o alone_a after_o this_o manner_n god_n in_o all_o age_n have_v have_v his_o church_n upon_o earth_n but_o in_o how_o many_o soul_n it_o consist_v be_v know_v only_o to_o god_n the_o people_n of_o israel_n be_v call_v the_o people_n of_o god_n among_o who_o there_o be_v assure_o soul_n resign_v unto_o he_o these_o make_v up_o the_o church_n in_o their_o time_n and_o no_o other_o even_o so_o among_o the_o jewish_a people_n and_o also_o the_o catholic_n the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v always_o be_v among_o they_o since_o god_n alliance_n with_o man_n can_v never_o fail_v but_o to_o believe_v that_o all_o that_o mass_n of_o people_n who_o call_v themselves_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v the_o church_n be_v to_o deceive_v ourselves_o because_o there_o never_o will_v be_v any_o other_o but_o the_o soul_n which_o of_o their_o freewill_n do_v resign_v themselves_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n all_o other_o be_v only_o carnal_a and_o material_a church_n i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o we_o stray_v much_o and_o great_o err_v in_o believe_v that_o all_o who_o be_v call_v the_o people_n of_o god_n do_v make_v up_o the_o church_n and_o that_o at_o present_a she_o consist_v of_o christendom_n which_o jesus_n christ_n authorize_v and_o say_v that_o 19_o what_o she_o do_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o heaven_n she_o say_v sir_n man_n be_v blind_a and_o walk_v where_o they_o see_v nothing_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o spouse_n of_o god_n reside_v among_o christian_a people_n though_o it_o be_v no_o more_o but_o in_o one_o soul_n alone_o but_o to_o believe_v that_o this_o church_n consist_v of_o that_o great_a number_n of_o person_n who_o be_v call_v christian_n be_v great_o to_o deceive_v ourselves_o because_o of_o they_o god_n may_v say_v true_o 13._o my_o people_n have_v forsake_v i_o which_o appear_v by_o the_o whole_a behaviour_n of_o these_o christian_n now_o who_o live_v whole_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o god_n every_o one_o be_v so_o wed_v to_o his_o own_o will_n as_o if_o it_o have_v only_o be_v give_v he_o to_o satisfy_v himself_o and_o use_v the_o authority_n that_o god_n give_v his_o church_n as_o if_o they_o be_v sovereign_n and_o independent_a upon_o he_o all_o which_o thing_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o spouse_n of_o god_n which_o move_v not_o but_o by_o the_o motion_n of_o her_o husband_n of_o who_o she_o know_v she_o hold_v all_o thing_n and_o she_o never_o ascribe_v any_o thing_n to_o herself_o how_o shall_v this_o mass_n of_o christian_n compose_v the_o church_n since_o among_o they_o we_o do_v not_o observe_v almost_o any_o who_o will_v resign_v their_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o those_o who_o make_v their_o profit_n of_o the_o authority_n that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v his_o church_n be_v robber_n and_o take_v what_o belong_v to_o another_o for_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v whatsoever_o you_o shall_v do_v here_o on_o earth_n i_o will_v do_v in_o heaven_n he_o speak_v to_o his_o spouse_n and_o not_o to_o his_o enemy_n as_o those_o person_n be_v who_o cleave_v to_o their_o own_o will_n who_o do_v very_o impertinent_o usurp_v the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n or_o spouse_n of_o god_n for_o his_o true_a spouse_n be_v in_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o her_o husband_n be_v unite_v by_o a_o holy_a and_o divine_a will_n so_o that_o they_o can_v disclaim_v one_o another_o and_o therefore_o what_o she_o shall_v do_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v do_v also_o in_o heaven_n by_o their_o unity_n of_o will_n which_o be_v still_o conformable_a though_o this_o will_v be_v wrap_v up_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o body_n of_o the_o spouse_n which_o be_v yet_o on_o earth_n it_o be_v nevertheless_o unite_a to_o that_o of_o her_o husband_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o what_o the_o one_o do_v the_o other_o approve_v because_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n can_v be_v against_o itself_o i_o say_v to_o she_o that_o this_o quality_n of_o union_n of_o will_n to_o that_o of_o god_n be_v a_o divine_a thing_n and_o invisible_a to_o bodily_a eye_n ask_v she_o how_o i_o may_v discover_v and_o know_v the_o true_a church_n and_o spouse_n of_o god_n she_o say_v sir_n you_o will_v perceive_v it_o sufficient_o even_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n if_o you_o serious_o apply_v your_o spirit_n to_o discover_v her_o quality_n for_o st._n john_n in_o his_o revelation_n paint_v out_o all_o her_o quality_n under_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o woman_n who_o sit_v in_o the_o sun_n and_o have_v the_o moon_n under_o her_o foot_n and_o upon_o her_o head_n twelve_o star_n this_o woman_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o only_a spouse_n of_o god_n she_o be_v first_o seat_v in_o the_o sun_n that_o be_v that_o the_o spouse_n of_o god_n repose_v always_o in_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n and_o never_o turn_v aside_o from_o it_o that_o she_o do_v not_o walk_v therein_o as_o a_o passenger_n but_o sit_v in_o it_o as_o in_o her_o place_n of_o repose_n second_o that_o she_o have_v the_o moon_n under_o her_o foot_n that_o be_v that_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v mutable_a and_o changeable_a as_o the_o moon_n such_o be_v the_o good_n the_o riches_n the_o honour_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n be_v all_o tread_v under_o foot_n by_o the_o church_n or_o spouse_n of_o god_n three_o that_o she_o bear_v on_o her_o head_n twelve_o star_n these_o be_v the_o twelve_o fruit_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n with_o which_o the_o spouse_n of_o god_n be_v still_o inseparable_o adorn_v because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n where_o he_o reside_v be_v never_o barren_a there_o he_o always_o bring_v forth_o his_o fruit_n and_o there_o also_o he_o still_o bestow_v his_o gift_n by_o which_o sir_n you_o may_v sufficient_o discover_v in_o what_o soul_n the_o church_n reside_v if_o you_o do_v not_o find_v all_o this_o furniture_n never_o believe_v blind_o that_o the_o church_n be_v in_o those_o who_o do_v not_o possess_v these_o quality_n or_o condition_n which_o be_v the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n without_o which_o you_o can_v never_o own_o that_o she_o be_v the_o true_a spouse_n of_o god_n for_o these_o mark_n be_v inseparable_a from_o she_o and_o where_o you_o shall_v not_o find_v they_o you_o must_v immediate_o desist_v from_o believe_v that_o you_o have_v find_v the_o church_n because_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o delusion_n where_o they_o say_v she_o be_v without_o these_o quality_n for_o she_o never_o go_v without_o they_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o amuse_v though_o they_o say_v to_o you_o this_o be_v the_o church_n